PHD Thesis Offical PDF File-Libre
PHD Thesis Offical PDF File-Libre
PHD Thesis Offical PDF File-Libre
Author(s)
Cawley, Jessica
Publication date
2013
Original citation
Type of publication
Doctoral thesis
Rights
http://hdl.handle.net/10468/1548
Downloaded on 2014-05-16T20:25:55Z
Dr. Mel Mercier, Supervisor and Head of School of Music & Theatre
Dr. Jonathan Stock, Head of Department of Music
1
Table of Contents
Page
Declaration
Acknowledgements
List of Images
List of Tables
Abbreviations
10
Abstract
11
13
Introduction
13
Structure of Thesis
18
Literature Review
21
Ethnomusicology
22
Education
26
29
34
Methodology
36
Fieldwork
39
Participant-observation
43
Interviews
49
55
58
61
64
69
73
75
Mentors
79
Peers
82
2
Family Influences
87
Parents
90
Early Exposure to Music
97
Siblings
102
105
109
116
118
Historical Context
121
Types of Sessions
122
127
133
Some Concerns
141
Concluding Thoughts
148
151
Concluding Thoughts
154
156
159
Extra-Curricular Tuition
169
171
176
Pipers Clubs
181
183
187
192
Scoil igse
199
202
207
Competitions
211
Concluding Thoughts
225
227
229
233
236
Written Sources
239
Notation
241
Collections
247
Instrumental Tutors
251
Some Concerns
253
Phonographic Technology
260
Commercial Recordings
262
Repertoire
264
Style
266
Enculturation
270
Radio
274
Non-commercial Recordings
277
Video Recordings
283
Internet
289
Emerging Technologies
306
Concluding Thoughts
311
315
Summary
316
320
Longevity of Participation
322
326
Appendix A: Glossary
329
332
339
347
Bibliography
349
Discography
391
4
Declaration
I, Jessica Cawley, declare that this thesis is my own independent research and
writing, except where appropriately acknowledged in references in the text. This
is the only publication of this work, and it has not been submitted for any other
degree at National University of Ireland, Cork or any other institution.
....
....
Jessica Cawley
Date:
Acknowledgements
This thesis and research could not have been possible with the help and support
of a network of people. Because my research relies on interviewing and field
observations, I am especially grateful to all the Irish traditional musicians and
organizers who helped me throughout my field research. Twenty musicians
openly and kindly offered their time, learning experiences, stories, and opinions. I
have learned much from these musicians (musically, personally, and
academically), and I extend my warmest thanks to: Mary Bergin, Matt Cranitch,
Mick Daly, Cormac De Frein, Liz Doherty, James Duggan, Helen Gubbins, Aoife
Granville, Hammy Hamilton, Martin Hayes, Ciara N Fhearghail, Geraldine
OCallaghan, Toms Canainn, Connie O'Connell, Conal Grda, Lisa
O'Sullivan, Michael O'Sullivan, John Reid, Seamus Sands, and Niall Vallely. On
numerous occasions, several of these musicians contacted me about my research
to provide additional stories and insights. A few, such as Seamus Sands, Mary
Bergin, and Matt Cranitch, went above and beyond, and offered valuable
feedback on drafts of my writing. Seamus Sands deserves special recognition, as
during the early stages of my fiddle playing, he provided me with much
encouragement and advice. On several occasions at Seamuss invitation, I went to
his house to play tunes together and chat over cups of tea. I also joined Seamus
and his family for dinner on a number of occasions. I learned so much about
fiddle playing and Irish traditional music during these encounters, and I am
grateful for the warm welcome I received from the Sands Family. I am also
indebted to Fearghal MacGobhann and Aidan O'Halloran for talking to me about
the history and the role music-making plays in their establishments. I would also
like to thank Siobhn N Chonarin, Barry Cogan, and the students, organizers,
and teachers at the CC Douglas Branch. I have particularly fond memories of
playing sessions in the CC Douglas Comhaltas Branch and participating in their
end of year concerts.
I am appreciative and thankful to numerous people at the University
College Cork (UCC) who have influenced, supported, and aided my research and
work. Firstly, my gratitude and thanks goes to my supervisor, Mel Mercier, who
provided countless hours of patience, guidance, and feedback over the past four
years. I would also like to thank Carmel Daly for her support and Paul Everett for
6
his advice on academic writing and for reviewing some of my work. At UCC, I
also was fortunate to interact with a variety of postgraduate students, who
provided support and encouragement along the way. I would like to thank my
peers Sara Goek, Estelle Murphy, Michelle Finnerty, and Jessica Shine, for all
their advice on writing, academic, and personal matters. In particular, I would
like to thank Grinne McHale, for her friendship and her musical, academic,
professional, and personal support over the past few years. Lastly, I would like to
express my gratitude to the undergraduate students in my Music Education course
for their enthusiasm, which continues to inspire me as a teacher. Thanks also go
to my good friends and musical comrades, Sarah Roach, Erin Dempsey, and
Katie Kilroy. Additionally, I would like to thank Janice Waldron and Kari Veblen
for their contribution to Irish traditional music scholarship, and for their advice
and comments.
Here, I would also like to acknowledge the Society for Musicology in
Ireland for their award of a fieldwork scholarship. This was much appreciated, as
I was able to enroll in workshops, summer schools, and classes as part of my field
research. I would also like to express my thanks to the staff at the Irish
Traditional Music Archive in Dublin for all their hard work and help over the
years.
On a personal note, I would like to thank my family for all the support
and encouragement throughout the years. To my parents, Chris and Jackie
Cawley, I am forever grateful for my education, all the music lessons, and
support at concerts throughout the years. Without their encouragement this study
would not have been possible. My warmest thanks also extend to the Mc
Sweeney family for their kindness and making me feel so at home in Cork. Last
but certainly not least, my warmest thanks and appreciation goes to Anthony Mc
Sweeney for his encouragement, support, patience, and good-natured insight into
life.
List of Images
Page:
Image 1: The Corner House
41
Image 2: Sin
41
177
188
188
205
224
242
243
249
299
299
300
301
301
List of Tables
Page:
Table 1: Fieldwork Sites
40
51
188
189
193
204
293
297
Abbreviations
ASD Amazing Slow Downer
CC Comhaltas Ceoltir ireann (also referred to as Comhaltas)
CoP Abbreviation commonly used in the literature to refer to
community/communities of practice
GAA Gaelic Athletics Association
LiveTrad refers to the website www.livetrad.com
OED Oxford English Dictionary
RnaG Raidi na Gaeltachta
SCT (exams) Scrdu Ceol Tre
Sessions Irish traditional music sessions
SEM Society of Ethnomusicology
SSWC Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy
thesession refers to the website www.thesession.org
Traditional music Irish traditional music
Traditional musicians people who play Irish traditional music
TradConnect refers to the website www.tradconnect.com
UCC University College Cork
A note on the use of first and surnames names:
Throughout the thesis, I often refer to my interviewees by their first names (only
after it is clear to the reader whom I am referring to). Many of my interviewees
have also contributed their own research on various topics within Irish traditional
music scholarship. When referring to my interviewees works as authors, I refer
to them in the text by their surnames.
10
Abstract
The enculturation of Irish traditional musicians involves informal, non-formal,
and sometimes formal learning processes in a number of different settings,
including traditional music sessions, workshops, festivals, and classes. Irish
traditional musicians also learn directly from family, peers, and mentors and by
using various forms of technology. Each experience contributes to the
enculturation process in meaningful and complementary ways. The ethnographic
research discussed in this dissertation suggests that within Irish traditional music
culture, enculturation occurs most effectively when learners experience a
multitude of learning practices. A variety of experiences insures that novices
receive multiple opportunities for engagement and learning. If a learner finds one
learning practice ineffective, there are other avenues of enculturation.
This thesis explores the musical enculturation of Irish traditional
musicians. It focuses on the process of becoming a musician by drawing on
methodologies and theories from ethnomusicology, education, and Irish
traditional music studies. Data was gathered through multiple ethnographic
methodologies. Fieldwork based on participant-observation was carried out in a
variety of learning contexts, including traditional music sessions, festivals,
workshops, and weekly classes. Additionally, interviews with twenty
accomplished Irish traditional musicians provide diverse narratives and firsthand
insight into musical development and enculturation. These and other
methodologies are discussed in Chapter 1.
The three main chapters of the thesis explore various common learning
experiences. Chapter 2 explores how Irish traditional musicians learn during
social and musical interactions between peers, mentors, and family members, and
focuses on live music-making which occurs in private homes, sessions, and
concerts. These informal and non-formal learning experiences primarily take
place outside of organizations and institutions. The interview data suggests these
learning experiences are perhaps the most pervasive and influential in terms of
musical enculturation.
Chapter 3 discusses learning experience in more organized settings, such
as traditional music classes, workshops, summer schools, and festivals. The role
of organizations such as Comhaltas Ceoltir ireann and pipers clubs are
11
discussed from the point of view of the learner. Many of the learning experiences
explored in this chapter are informal, non-formal, and sometimes formal in
nature, depending on the philosophy of the organization, institution, and
individual teacher. The interview data and field observations indicate that
learning in these contexts is common and plays a significant role in enculturation,
particularly for traditional musicians who were born during and after the 1970s.
12
Chapter 1
Exploring the Enculturation of Irish Traditional Musicians:
Introduction, Literature Review, and Methodology
Introduction
Within Irish traditional music culture, the enculturation process involves a variety
of informal, non-formal, and formal learning experiences. Irish traditional
musicians learn in numerous settings, including traditional music sessions,
workshops, festivals, and weekly classes. They also learn directly from family,
peers, and mentors and by using various forms of technology. Typically,
traditional musicians develop various musical skills and an understanding of their
music culture by participating, over some years, in multiple learning contexts and
by interacting with other practitioners. In this thesis, I propose that enculturation
occurs most effectively when traditional musicians experience diverse and
multiple modes of learning. A multiplicity of learning experiences enriches the
learning process by providing a wide range of opportunities for engagement with
Irish traditional music. Throughout the dissertation, I outline the specific benefits
of particular learning experiences and illustrate how these learning experiences
complement one another when used in combination.
The purpose of this ethnographic study is to investigate the enculturation
of Irish traditional musicians. Anthropologists and other social scientists have
investigated the concept and phenomenon of enculturation from a variety of
perspectives. Herskovits, who coined the term in 1948, writes:
The aspects of the learning experience which mark off
man from other creatures, and by means of which... he
achieves competence in his culture, may be called
enculturation. This is in essence a process of conscious
or unconscious conditioning (Herskovits 1948:39).
(1964:146). While learning repertoire and instrumental skills are significant parts
of musical enculturation, they are only part of the process of becoming a
musician. Musical enculturation involves learning ones own musical culture,
including its social and cultural norms. In this study, I explore issues of
socialization, motivation, and identity, as well as repertoire and skill acquisition.
Understanding how a traditional musician learns repertoire and develops style is
only part of the equation; in this thesis, I also explore the more complete process
of becoming a traditional musician.
Throughout the dissertation, I draw on many ethnographic studies that
explore the process of becoming a musician. As Wenger states, Because learning
transforms who we are and what we can do, it is an experience of identity. It is
not just an accumulation of skills and information, but a process of becoming
(1998:215). Neumans exploration of becoming a musician in North Indian
Classical Music culture (1990) and Greens similar exploration within popular
music (2002, 2005a) are particularly useful models, as I discuss in the literature
review below. My research is also influenced by Lave and Wenger theory of
legitimate peripheral participation, which aptly describes the process of
becoming a practitioner in any community of practice (Lave and Wenger
1991:28-31). From the perspective of legitimate peripheral participation, learning
is a process in which newcomers slowly move from the periphery towards the
centre of a community of practice. The transition from novice to experienced
traditional musician is one of the major focuses of this dissertation. I am
interested in the shifting of identities during the enculturation process.
Anthropologists and ethnomusicologists emphasize that in order to
understand culture, we must also understand enculturation. Nettl argues that one
can hardly comprehend a musical system without knowing how it is taught,
learned and transmitted in its own society (1992:389).1 Learning and culture are
not separate processes. As Wenger proposes, they are intimately connected and
inform each another:
There is not a separate process for the transmission of
1
For examples see also (Blacking 1992; Green 2005b; Lave 2011; Mead 1963; Merriam 1964;
Nettl 1985, 1992, 2005; Wenger 1998).
14
Lave (2011) discusses her past fieldwork in tailor shops in Liberia where she observed the
apprenticeship of young tailors. From her field experience, she concluded that learning was
the process to observe, rather than teaching, in such informal learning situations.
15
Most interviewees are full-time or part-time professional traditional music performers and
teachers. Some interviewees have careers in other fields, most commonly in building and
engineering. See Appendix B for background information about the interviewees.
16
few have explored informal instrumental music learning with adults (Waldron
2009a:55), and Swanwick points out:
Comparatively few writers seem concerned to study
human development beyond the early years. It is,
admittedly, more difficult than the study of very young
children, since social and environmental variables
become more obviously powerful as we grow up and it
becomes very awkward to untangle (1988:70).4
While this approach adds layers of complexity to the research, the inclusion of
adult traditional musicians learning and enculturation processes is revealing,
because adults can give their opinions about past learning experiences as well as
describe their current learning practices and habits.
This dissertation provides a snapshot of relatively recent and current
learning practices within Irish traditional music. Modern learning practices are
not compared to past transmission practices. In her influential study, which I
frequently drawn on in this thesis, Kari Veblen explores Irish traditional music
teachers perception of change and stability of transmission practices (1991).
Additionally, I focus on the actual learning practices themselves, rather than
issues of bureaucracy, politics, nationalism, and history involved in learning
music in Ireland. Marie McCarthys research provides insight into these areas
(1990, 1999). Veblen and McCarthy provide imperative background information
and a research model for music education research and Irish traditional music.
This thesis intends to add to this body of literature from a different, but
complementary perspective.
Although the traditional musicians I interviewed describe a diversity of
learning experiences and opinions, some significant patterns of enculturation
emerged. First, there are clear trends depending on generation. For instance,
interviewees born after 1970 had considerably more structured learning
experiences at summer schools and weekly tuition than musicians born before
1970. Other patterns were more universal, cutting across all ages, gender,
4
Since 1988, there have been numerous ethnomusicological and educational studies into the
development and enculturation of adult musicians (Berliner 1994; Cope 2005; Green 2002;
Waldron 2006a, 2006b, 2009a, 2011; Waldron and Veblen 2009). However, developmental
studies still tend to focus on music learning processes and experiences during childhood.
17
instrument choice, and birthplace. A primary example is the central role of aural
learning, which takes place in both unstructured and structured learning
environments and with and without the use of technology. Musical and social
enjoyment also plays an important role in the enculturation process. Enjoyment
encourages long-term participation in Irish traditional music, and when learners
experience longevity of participation, they are more likely to consider the activity
a part of their daily lives. My research suggests that long-term participation is
crucial to the lifelong process of enculturation. Finally, a significant pattern of
enculturation is the tendency for traditional musicians to engage with multiple
and diverse learning experiences. In this regard, a variety of educational and
performance opportunities plays a significant role during the enculturation of
Irish traditional musicians.
Seth Chaiklin suggests that research that attempts to understand human
practices with attention to the societal context in which this practice is carried out
is likely to develop descriptions that would be directly useful in that practice
(1993:394). Many issues and questions raised in this thesis may interest other
scholars and teachers of Irish traditional music. Although teaching is not a
primary concern, exploring learning processes has numerous implications for
teachers of Irish traditional music. Details of successful learning strategies can
also help learners understand and reevaluate their own learning and progression.
Although this is not a how-to-learn guide, novice musicians may find this thesis
useful and practitioners of all skill levels may be interested to discover how
accomplished traditional musicians learn and develop. However, this thesis is a
description of, not a prescription for learning Irish traditional music. It is an
ethnographic description of the learning process, and explores the educational
implications of this process by drawing on a number of anthropological and
educational theories.
Structure of Thesis
Throughout this chapter, I review germane literature, discuss my research
methodology, and conclude with a proposal that the enculturation of Irish
traditional musicians involves a multiplicity of learning experiences. In Chapter
18
Comhaltas Ceoltir ireann (CC) is the largest and most influential organization promoting
Irish traditional music. In everyday discourse, and throughout this dissertation, CC is often
simply referred to as Comhaltas.
19
Ciara N Fhearghail (b.1990) is a whistle and button accordion player from An Rinn, Waterford.
I met Ciara at the Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy, and was introduced to her by her brother,
Caoimhn Fearghail, who I met playing sessions in Cork City. (Throughout the dissertation,
when I reference or quote an interviewee for the first time, I provide a brief statement about
each musician. Additional background information about each interviewee is also available in
Appendix B).
20
While playing in sessions (discussed in Chapter 2), Ciara often records unknown
tunes on her mobile phone (discussed in Chapter 4). Later, in private, she aurally
learns the melody using her phones digital recordings capabilities. Such
interconnections between practices illustrate the multiplicity of learning practices
involved during the enculturation process.
In Chapter 5, I explore some overarching patterns of enculturation within
Irish traditional music culture. I argue that longevity of participation and
engagement in multiple learning and performance opportunities foster the
enculturation of Irish traditional musicians. The learning and enculturation
processes described throughout this thesis are complex in nature. Therefore, in
the concluding chapter I also suggest areas which require more research and
investigation.
Literature Review
The literature discussed in this section has significantly shaped my research
approach and influenced this study. This review is succinct since pertinent
research is discussed in more depth throughout the thesis. Many of the germane
theories and studies discussed below are interdisciplinary in nature. I am
particularly influenced by ethnomusicological research into learning processes
and educational investigations into cultural processes. An interdisciplinary
approach allows me to explore, in a holistic way, complicated creative, musical,
cultural, and educational processes within Irish traditional music. As Delige and
Wiggins argue, There is no hope of understanding creative behaviour by looking
at it from one discipline, using a single methodological approach even within a
given scientific field (2006:5). Because enculturation involves the social,
cultural, physical, emotional, psychological, and cognitive self, it is investigated
by scholars from a variety of fields, including anthropology, sociology, education,
cognitive psychology, and neuroscience.7 While my dissertation focuses
primarily on socio-cultural issues, perspectives of the enculturation process from
7
Reviewing the literature on enculturation from all these fields is not necessary here. For a
comprehensive literature review, see (Morrison, Demorest, and Stambaugh 2008).
21
Ethnomusicology
Ethnomusicological literature has significantly influenced my approach and
investigation of enculturation within Irish traditional music culture. My
methodology is largely based on ethnomusicological theory and practice, and this
field of study influences my perspective of learning processes. To an
ethnomusicologist, learning is a socio-cultural phenomenon, not merely a
function of the brain, as assumed by cognitive researchers in the past. As
discussed below, several ethnographies provide valuable insights into the
enculturation process and function as theoretical models for my own research.
Some interdisciplinary studies are difficult to categorize and do not fall neatly into these three
categories. Influential contributions from musicology, anthropology, and cognitive studies are
discussed throughout the dissertation.
22
For examples and a full discussion see (Baily and Driver 1992; Bjrkvold 1990; Blacking 1985;
Campbell 1991, 2000, 2003; Deschnes 1998; Garfias 1985; Green 2002; Grimmer 2011;
Johnson 1985; McAllester 1985; Nettl 1982, 1985, 2005; Rice 1985; Robertson 1985; Sloboda
1985, 1990; Stock 2003; Veblen 1991; Waterman 1990).
23
Using this information, researchers and educators can reevaluate their own
cultures learning systems. Music teachers may be inspired to experiment with
different learning methods from around the world. One of the aims of my
research is to shed light on effective learning activities within Irish traditional
music culture.
In terms of shaping my educational philosophy and research approach, a
number of ethnographies that focus on music learning processes are particularly
influential. The ethnographies discussed below all explore the processes of
becoming a musician and issues of identity within different musical cultures. My
work is particularly influenced by ethnographer and educationalist, Lucy Green
(1997, 2002, 2003, 2005a, 2008, 2011), who provides useful and enlightening
theories on the different types of learning processes. Greens perspectives on
informal learning and peer-directed learning shape my conceptualization and
educational philosophy. In her study of popular musicians learning practices,
Green suggests that informal and formal learning can be conceived as extremes
existing at the two ends of a single pole. In some countries and some musics,
formal and informal music education sit side by side in the nature of an
apprenticeship training (2002:5). Green considers informal and formal learning
as a spectrum of experiences, a philosophy which underlies many of my
24
of learning practices will aid learners of Irish traditional music, as well as provide
cultural and educational information to other researchers and academics. In this
dissertation, I also make reference to several other ethnographies which also
investigate music learning and enculturation (Baily 1988a; Bennett 1980;
Blacking 1967, 1973, 1985; Kingsbury 1988; Nettl 1989; Rice 1994; Snosniack
1990).
Ethnographies mentioned above focus on and explore the process of
enculturation, and each scholar treats learning as a holistic process in which the
self is integrated into a musical community. Learning involves a change to the
self. This involves not only changes to ones knowledge, but also ones identity.
Each of these ethnographies describes distinct learning experiences, and
highlights the fact that each music culture has its own unique way of introducing
music to newcomers. During the early stages of my research, these ethnographies
helped to expand my awareness of different learning practices around the world.
These models influence my philosophy, and therefore, many of my own research
questions and purposes are focused on the process of becoming a traditional
musician, not merely on how one learns repertoire and style. While it is relatively
easy to learn a few traditional tunes, developing the ability to play with creativity
and expression involves a significant development of the musical and social
self. In all cultures, becoming a musician involves learning, enculturation, and
identity formation.
Education
This section briefly reviews educational theories, research, and perspectives
which significantly guide my research approach, analysis, and interpretation. I
discuss the importance of an interdisciplinary perspective on learning processes.
Although my study specifically investigates learning from a socio-cultural
viewpoint, reviewing education research from a wide range of disciplines
provides crucial information about learning and developmental processes.
Learning is - and needs to be - investigated from many different perspectives,
exemplified in studies within the fields of cognition, psychology, biology,
anthropology, sociology, and human development. Ignoring these perspectives
26
27
being learned by ear.13 For instance, Baily and Driver suggest that:
musical patterns are remembered and executed not
solely as aural patterns but as sequences of movements,
and that the music is therefore represented cognitively
in terms of movement patterns which have visual,
kinaesthetic, tactile, as well as auditory repercussions
(1992:62).
John Baily and John Blacking, in particular, have contributed much research in this area. For a
full discussion see (Alerby and Ferm 2005; Baily 1977, 1990, 1995; Berliner 1994; Blacking
1973, 1977a, 1990, 1992; Rice 1985).
28
14
29
have used and expanded the concepts to investigate learning processes.15 For
example, Keller and Keller (1993) use the concept of communities of practice to
explore how metalworkers learn to mould iron in creative ways. Hutchins (1993)
uses the theory to explore how sailors learn to navigate, and Lave (2011) uses it
to describe how West African boys learn and slowly move from the status of
apprentice to master tailor. The flexibility of Lave and Wengers learning theories
benefit scholars with many interests and focuses. These theories are not just used
by educational researchers; Lave and Wengers theories are as influential in
business studies as they are in social sciences, for example. In this section, I
discuss how theories of situated learning and communities of practice
significantly inform my educational philosophy and research approach. A
community of practice may be defined as a group of people who are bound
together by joint enterprise, mutual engagement, shared repertoire (Wenger
1998:73). It is the practice itself rather than ethnic, social, economic, or
political identities which binds people together, although these identities also
play a role within many communities of practice. Situated learning occurs during
participation within communities of practice, and is in part a product of the
activity, context, and culture in which it is developed and used (Pitri 2004:6).
Lave and Wenger present a theory of social practice in which learning is viewed
as an aspect of all activity, and shift away from a theory of situated activity in
which learning is reified as one kind of activity (1991:37-8).
Theories of situated learning - occasionally referred to as social practice
theory - directly inform my research approach and philosophy. Lave and Wenger
understand learning to be a social process, always situated within everyday life
and practice. Their view of learning as a socially situated phenomenon
emphasizes that learning is an integral and inseparable aspect of social practice
(Lave and Wenger 1991:31), and learning is so fundamental to the social order
we live by that theorizing about one is tantamount to theorizing about the other
(Wenger 1998:15). Lave also explains that:
15
For examples see (Alerby and Ferm 2005; Chaiklin 1993; Chaiklin and Lave 1993; Engestrm
1993; Evenbeck and Kahn 2001; Fuhrer 1993; Haneda 2006; Hutchins 1993; Keller and
Keller 1993; Kruse 2012; Kvale 1993; Lave 1993, 2011; Lave and Wenger 1991; Levine
1993; McDermott 1993; Slj and Wyndhamn 1993; Squire and Johnson 2000; Waldron
2009b 2011; Wenger 1998; Wenger, McDermott, and Snyder 2002).
30
Several educators and music education scholars have recently used Lave and Wengers theories
to explore various learning and teaching phenomena (Countryman 2009; Evenbeck and Kahn
2001; Haneda 2006; Herbert 2009; Hewitt 2009; Salavuo 2008; Squire and Johnson 2000;
Waldron 2009b, 2011).
31
interviewed discussed the emotions that they felt during the learning process, and
issues of motivation, encouragement, and enjoyment emerge within the interview
data. In Chapter 2 for instance, I discuss how interacting with peers motivates
some of my interviewees to attend sessions and to play traditional music
consistently throughout their adulthoods. In other chapters, I also explore how
social issues are often directly related to the reasons why learners continue
participating in traditional music-making. I suggest that exploring issues of
emotion, motivation, and enjoyment can shed light on long-term participation and
how traditional musicians are enculturated.
Communities of practice is another concept that influences my research
and conceptions of learning. Communities of practice are described as:
groups of people who share a concern, a set of
problems, or a passion about a topic, and who deepen
their knowledge and expertise in this area by interacting
on an ongoing basis (Wenger, McDermott, and Snyder
2002:4).
17
32
19
Throughout the 1990s, there has been much debate about continuity and change, purism and
innovation in Irish traditional music. The subject of conferences and various media exchanges
( hAllmhurin 2008:177). See also (Hamilton 1996; Hannan 1999; Keegan 1992; Mac Aoidh
1994; Mac Mahon 1999; McCullough 1977; Moloney 1999; Munnelly 1999; Silleabhin
1999; Sommers Smith 1998; Veblen 1991).
34
McCarthys and Veblens studies are valuable models for researchers interested in
Irish traditional music and music education. This dissertation aims to contribute
to this existing body of literature by exploring informal, non-formal, and formal
learning and enculturation processes from the point of view of the learner.
Stock suggests that ethnomusicologists commonly describe teaching,
learning, and transmission alongside studying other kinds of processes in a
society that are driving on or inhibiting musical change (2003:139).
Significantly, Stock argues that these perspectives could highly benefit music
education research. Within Irish traditional music literature, the learning process
is commonly discussed alongside various other related topics. For instance,
Cranitchs thesis focuses on the life and music of Pdraig O'Keeffe and the Sliabh
Luachra fiddle tradition. OKeeffe was a well-respected teacher and Cranitch
20
In addition to PhD research, there are also notable M.A. theses which focus on the learning of
traditional music within formal school settings (Cullen 2002; Finnerty 2008).
35
Methodology
In this section, I discuss my research methodology, which is primarily informed
by ethnomusicological models. Ethnomusicological methodology is characterized
by flexibility and use of multiple methods of data collection.21 My research
methodology is designed to address my specific research purpose and goals.
Below, I explore the advantages of employing ethnographic methods to
investigate learning processes. Following this, I discuss my primary methods of
21
See (Berliner 1994:3; Boils 1982:53; Herndon and McLeod 1983:15; Merriam 1982:176;
Myers 1992:13; Nettl 1992:392).
36
For a full discussion of the benefits of observing learning processes in a social and cultural
context see (Bjrkvold 1990; Clarke 2003:116; Deschnes 1998; Gardner 1990; Kippen1988;
Sloboda 1985:8, 1990; Taylor, J. 1990; Veblen 1991:44; Wade 1990; Waterman 1990).
38
Fieldwork
Fieldwork, or field research, is so germane to ethnomusicology that it nearly
defines the discipline. It is described as the hallmark (Nettl 2005:137) and the
most important aspect of ethnomusicology (Herndon and McLeod 1983:1).23
Fieldwork is characterized by elongated periods of observation of musical and
social life, in order to gain an understanding of local conceptualization (Cook
2003:211). OFlynn argues that fieldwork is significant because it causes
academic discussions to become grounded in everyday musical practices and
beliefs (2009:19). Ethnomusicology provides the theoretical and practical
models for the preparation and conduction of my own fieldwork, and field
research is central to ethnography and my own research approach.
Cooley describes fieldwork as the observational and experiential portion
of the ethnographic process during which the ethnomusicologists engages living
individuals in order to learn about music-culture (1997:4). As a methodology,
fieldwork was crucial in order for me to observe multiple learning contexts
firsthand. My fieldwork sites include sessions, festivals, workshops, classes, and
internet websites.24 In past research, I gained a general understanding of Irish
traditional music culture and began to recognize which learning practices and
contexts were worth exploring in more depth (Cawley 2008). Previous fieldwork
experiences helped me to formulate the research and interview questions which
feature in this present study. From April 2009 until December 2011, I conducted
field research primarily in County Cork. I also participated in numerous musical,
social, and educational activities at festivals, summer schools, and sessions in
Clare, Cavan, and Galway.
23
24
See also (Barz and Cooley 1997; Herndon and McLeod 1983; Post 2003).
For additional background information see Table 1 and Appendix C.
39
Fieldwork Sites:
o
o
Sessions
The Corner House: Cork City pub with regular weekly sessions
on Tuesdays, Wednesdays, and the first Friday of month (Apr.
2009- Dec. 2011).
Summer
School
Festivals
Weekly
Classes
Internet
Image 2: Sin
Photographs by author
local, provincial, and national levels also host informal music-making and social
events, such as sessions, concerts, and dancing, but aim to promote high
performance standards through an organized competition structure. Other
traditional music festivals focus primarily on providing performance
opportunities in the form of sessions and concerts. Festivalgoers at the popular
Ennis Trad Festival, for instance, attend concerts and listen, socialize, and
participate in sessions.
Since its establishment in 1951, Comhaltas Ceoltir ireann has been the
largest, most popular and influential organization which promotes Irish traditional
music, song, and dance. Over the years, thousands of musicians have attended
CCs classes and participated in competitions and informal music-making.
Musical, social, and learning activities in CCs branches and fleadhanna play a
significant and complex role in the enculturation process. In light of this
educational influence, from March to December 2011, I participated and
observed in weekly classes and sessions at the Douglas CC Branch. During my
experiences at the branch, I observed a variety of informal, non-formal, and
formal learning processes.
Ethnographers now use the internet as a research tool and a virtual
fieldwork location.25 As part of my research, I engaged in online fieldwork on
numerous websites. Some, such as TradConnect and LiveTrad, are specific to the
Irish traditional music community, while other websites, such as YouTube and
Facebook, are used by traditional musicians in interesting ways. I conducted my
online research primarily on the websites www.thesession.org (thesession) and
www.tradconnect.com (TradConnect).26 On these websites, I communicated with
other members on discussion boards and explored the websites as a learner.
Members of thesession can search or browse repertoire on the tune database or
discuss various aspects of Irish traditional music and culture on discussion
For further discussion of ethnographic internet field research see (Jaffurs 2011; Lysloff 2003;
Nettl 2005; Reily 2003; Waldron 2009b, 2011; Waldron and Veblen 2008; Wilson and
Peterson 2002). Lysloff (2003) in particular wrote an insightful article about internet
fieldwork, which provides a theoretical basis for my fieldwork.
26
As a member of thesession since 2006, I am very familiar with its interface and general
characteristics. I have been a member of TradConnect since its launch in 2011. See
Appendixes C for further background information about my internet field research.
25
42
boards. Within the Irish traditional music literature, although some scholars
discuss internet communities (Kearns and Taylor 2003; Rapuano 2005; Sommers
Smith 2001; Vallely 2008), internet fieldwork is not yet a common methodology.
However, fieldwork on the internet is becoming more common, as evident in
Janice Waldrons recent research (2009b, 2011).27 While internet communities are
not the focus of this study, exploring this area was crucial due to some significant
educational implications. Websites can be convenient and relatively inexpensive
educational resources. Users of social networking sites, such as TradConnect, are
able to connect with other practitioner, either online or in live contexts. The
internet provides new and unique opportunities for communication, social
interaction, and learning, the implications of which are explored in Chapter 4 of
this dissertation.
Fieldwork in school settings was beyond the scope of this research and
was not necessary in order to address my research questions. Investigating the
transmission of Irish traditional music in schools settings involves numerous
complex teaching and learning processes, such as issues of teaching methods,
curricula, authority, assessments, and identity, to name but a few. And as Lave
and Wenger argue, schools are very specific contexts in which to explore
learning processes (1991:40). For these reasons, I argue that the complexities of
music learning processes in school contexts require and deserve their own
investigation. Furthermore, my interviewees placed a greater emphasis on
learning in other contexts, such as sessions, CC activities, summer schools, and
learning from peers, family, and mentors. Taking this folk view into
consideration, I focused my fieldwork observations within these contexts. A small
number of interviewees had significant learning experiences in school, and while
I explore this in Chapter 3, more research exploring the role schools play in the
enculturation of Irish traditional musicians is needed in the future.
Participant-observation
Both ethnomusicologists and educationalists commonly rely on observations of
27
Waldron plays and researches Irish traditional music, but her internet fieldwork also includes
explorations into Old-Time, Bluegrass, and Celtic music.
43
and often subtle, educational, musical, and social exchanges (Cawley 2008;
Hamilton 1978). Fairbairn, who conducted fieldwork in sessions in Cork,
explains:
The fact that communication in sessions is not a matter
of musicians directing their efforts towards an audience,
but is contained within the musical circle, means that
the session can only really be experienced and observed
from a playing seat. The musical process is integrated
into a social environment, and interactive detail is often
obscured to all but the participants themselves
(1993:43).
Koning, who conducted field research in pub sessions in Clare, similarly argues
that active musical participation may yield data that probably cannot be collected
with the use of any other technique (1980:429). Rapuano also observed in
County Clare sessions, but did not employ participant-observation. She states,
As a non-musician, I was no longer able to hear most of the conversations
among the musicians (2005:28). As a flute and fiddle player, I participated in
sessions, and the physically proximity to the socio-musical action allowed me to
observe significant cultural, musical, and educational exchanges.
However, as Cooley argues, Music participation is not simply a means
for gaining access to cultural information (1997:17). Participant-observation
provides multifaceted benefits to the fieldworker. I also participated as a student
at weekly Comhaltas classes and workshops at summer schools and festivals.
Participation in these contexts allowed me to note my own learning processes as
well as observe learning in teaching scenarios. While a field researcher can
observe the learning process from the back of the classroom in these contexts, the
ability to experience the learning process as a student contributed to my personal
and musical understanding of Irish traditional music, its culture, and the learning
process.
Ethnomusicologists assert that elongated periods of participation in the
field can foster an in-depth cultural understanding. Stock argues:
ethnomusicologists normally learn to perform
together with the subjects of their study. This provides
close access to the heart of the performance events and
45
For a discussion about fostering positive relationships during field research see (Beaudry 1997;
Cooley 1997; Hellier-Tinoco 2003; Kisliuk 1997; Kingsbury 1988; Kubik 2000; Mead 1969;
Myers 1992; Nettl 2005; Shelemay 1997; Silverman 1995; Slobin 1992; Stock 2003; Tilton
1997, 2003). Within the ethnomusicological literature, scholars such as the ones listed above,
also discuss the numerous challenging aspects of field research. During fieldwork, researchers
must sensitively and effectively negotiate relationships and cultural, social, and musical
meaning. In addition to discussing the positive outcomes of participating with informants in
the field, Beaudry highlights the many challenges she faced during her field research in a
small, rural, isolated village in the Artic, and openly discusses her feelings of frustration,
isolation, even imprisonment (Beaudry 1997:65).
46
I normally would, in order not to introduce too many extraneous factors, and to
be as objective as possible. For this reason very few recordings were made or
photographs taken (Hamilton 1978:7). OSheas experience also highlights
challenges facing observers in the field:
...the presence of tape recorders and cameras, even if not
used, often detracted from musicians' enjoyment and
musical flow, making them self-conscious or hostile
towards listeners. As a result, I made very few
recordings (2005:31).
29
48
Interviews
Interviews with traditional musicians were a critical part of my field research and
furnished the most significant results in terms of data collection. Interviews with
the twenty musicians are my primary sources and inform and guide my
exploration of musical enculturation. These interviews serve the main purpose of
my research to explore how traditional musicians experience the enculturation
process. Interviewees narratives about their musical enculturation and opinions
reveal a wealth of information, much of which could not be gained through
observation alone. Collecting educational histories is a conventional ethnographic
methodology, one which plays a central role in this study.31 Long, open-ended
interviews were critical in order for me to get to the heart of individual learning
and enculturation processes. As Wenger, McDermott, and Snyder suggest,
collecting stories is the best way to transverse the knowledge system in a way
that explains the linkages between community activities, knowledge resources,
and performance outcomes. Only a story can describe these complex casual
relations while incorporating implicit contextual factors that may be crucial to
appreciate but hard to codify or generalize (2002:168). By exploring
interviewees educational histories and stories of participating in music-making, I
draw meaningful connections between socializing, music-making, and learning,
which shed light on the enculturation process. I also interviewed several
organizers of traditional music events to gain a different perspective on my
fieldwork sites and various learning situations. Including multiple perspectives
and insider voices in the final representation is a defining and essential
philosophy within ethnomusicology. Ethnographers commonly highlight the
importance of featuring insiders views:
31
My research is influenced by other ethnographers who use this methodology (Baily 1988b;
Green 2002; Jaffurs 2011; Kingsbury 1988; Lord 2000; Neuman 1990; OFlynn 2011; Rice
1994; Snosniak 1990; Waldron 2006a, 2006b, 2009a; Veblen 1991).
49
See also (Berliner 1994:5; Marshall 1982:171; Nettl 1982, 2005; Seeger 1992:101).
See Appendix B for further background information about each participant. I also aimed to
establish a relatively representative balance between the two genders. Seven interviewees are
female and thirteen are male, which is fairly representative according to OShea who argued
Irish traditional music performance is still male-dominated (2005, 2008).
50
Instrument(s)
Seamus
Sands
Fiddle, whistle
Conal
Grda
Born
Interviewed
Duration
Newry, Down
2/2/2010
45 min.
Cork City
27/4/2010
34 min.
Cormac
De Frein
Flute, whistle,
piano
1980
Dn Laoghaire,
Dublin
12/5/2010
18/5/2010
15 min.
20 min.
Aoife
Granville
Flute, fiddle,
whistle, fife, piano
(F. horn)
1979
Dingle, Kerry
20/5/2010
30 min.
John Reid
Pipes, whistle
1971
Inch, Clare
26/7/2010
34 min.
Lisa
O'Sullivan
Fiddle, whistle
1975
4/8/2010
34 min.
Mick Daly
Guitar, 5-sting
Banjo, mandolin
1950
28/9/2010
35 min.
Michael
O'Sullivan
30 min.
James
Duggan
Fiddle, whistle,
flute.
1989
Listowel, Kerry
11/11/2010
65 min.
Ciara
N
Fhearghail
Whistle, button
accordion
1991
An Rinn,
Waterford
23/11/2010
21 min.
Toms
Canainn
Pipes, whistle,
accordion
1930
Derry City
8/12/2010
Connie
O'Connell
Fiddle
1943
Kilnamartra,
Cork
11/1/2011
65 min.
Matt
Cranitch
Fiddle, piano
1948
Rathduff, Cork
1/2/2011
43 min.
Martin
Hayes
Fiddle, banjo
1962
Maghera, Feakle,
4/2/2011
Clare
35 min.
1970
Armagh, Co.
Armagh
57 min
Concertina
Niall Vallely (whistle, pipes,
trumpet)
34
1963
Home County
Freemount, Cork
Cork City
7/2/2011
39 min
Waldron investigated how Canadian adult musicians learn Irish and other Celtic musics, and
there are several similarities as well as differences in how Waldrons and my own interviewees
learned Irish traditional music (Waldron 2009a). Once such difference was that Waldron
suggests her un-enculturated interviewees often had difficulty learning the music in the way
in which it was traditionally transmitted, that is, through aural/oral learning in context
(2009:58).
51
Button accordion,
whistle, piano,
guitar
Helen
Gubbins
1983
Lisnagry,
Limerick
17/2/2011
64 min.
1970
Buncrana,
Donegal
18/2/2011
48 min.
Hammy
Hamilton
Flute, whistle,
(guitar, banjo)
1953
Belfast, Antrim
18/3/2011
63 min.
Geraldine
OCallahan
Fiddle, whistle,
concertina, piano
1983
Freemount, Cork
3/5/2011
10/5/2011
33 min.
13 min.
1949
Shankill, Dublin
20/5/2011
55 min.
Many ethnomusicologists also seek out interviewees who display musical and
cultural competence rather than representativeness (Myers 1992:36). However,
some propose that musicians of varying types and skill levels should be included
in ethnographic studies (Berliner 1994:7; Herndon and McLeod 1983:68; Nettl
2005:145). The views of novice and intermediate traditional musicians are taken
into account throughout this thesis. During fieldwork, particularly in workshops,
festivals and on the internet, I informally communicated with musicians of all
backgrounds.35
35
However, to present a focused view of the enculturation process it was necessary for the
interview data to focus on a particular group of musicians. In the future, it may be useful to
investigate possible similarities and differences between novice and advanced musicians
learning practices.
52
See Appendix D for more information. All interview questions were carefully worded to
prevent my own biases from possibly influencing the participants statements.
53
54
Corner House, discussed the history of music-making in his pub, and also
provided valuable information about other Cork City pubs that have hosted
traditional music sessions between the 1970s to the present. This historical
perspective was useful during my discussions with traditional musicians.
For a full discussion see (Baily 2001; Berliner 1994; Cooley 1997; Koning 1980; Myers 1992;
Nettl 1992, 2005; Rice 1994, 2003; Silverman 1995; Shelemay 1997; Titon 1995; Waterhouse
1982).
55
I have played flute since 2005 and experienced a relatively rapid progression. As an active
saxophone player since age 11, it is possible that my quick development was related to the fact
that flute and saxophone fingerings are quite similar, and I previously learned aurally. I began
learning the fiddle in March 2010 and naively expected to develop quickly, considering my
progression on flute and my previous experience playing Irish traditional music. However,
with no background in string instruments, my physical progression on fiddle has been slow,
yet steady.
56
58
Baily and Doubleday (1990) also suggest that musicians perceptions and
descriptions of learning processes do not entirely match learning processes
observed during fieldwork. Their field research shows that while Afghani
musicians believe music should be transmitted formally through notation or the
student-master relationship, they actually learn by ear and through exposure to
the sounds of music, imitation of musical performance, and individual trial and
error (Baily and Doubleday 1990:95). Similarly, my interviewees opinions
about how traditional music should be learned do not necessarily correspond to
their own learning experiences. For example, some interviewees suggest that
traditional music sessions are less than ideal, or even detrimental, learning
environment. However, my fieldwork observations suggest these same musicians
commonly listen, experiment, and learn new repertoire during sessions.
Therefore, while some describe the session an unimportant learning environment,
my fieldwork observations suggest that unconscious and informal learning
processes in sessions play a significant role in enculturation. Researchers using
multiple methods can address challenges, such as this, that arise while
interpreting fieldwork and interview data. In this study, I cross-checked the
interviewees narratives, fieldwork observations, and my own learning
experiences to enhance the complexity and quality of the research.
Conflicting information in field observations and interview transcripts can
also be challenging to field researchers trying to interpret cultural and musical
meaning. However, as several ethnomusicologists argue, discrepancies,
contradiction, and even blatant lies by informants should not be considered a
mark of poor research or irrelevancy (Blacking 1992; Herndon and McLeod
1983; Nettl 2005). Nettl states of informants:
60
Nettl and Blacking argue that significant meaning can be found in all statements
by musicians. Researchers who carefully consider and follow up on all data
collected in the field, however seemingly contradictory, gain understanding of
participants cultural and social lives.
Interpretation and Identity
As in all ethnographies, my identity directly affects my perceptions and
interpretation of the data. Although I examine my own biases and attempt to limit
them whenever possible, the ethnographers own interests and opinions can never
be fully eliminated. The only way to address biases is for the researcher to
understand their own identity and how it may affect their interpretation. In this
brief section, I outline some of these issues of identity and interpretation. While
much of the thesis focuses on how the interviewees experience enculturation, my
own preconceptions about learning and enculturation are also present within the
ethnography. Kong and Pearson state:
As is true of all researchers, we did not start with a truly
blank slate that would allow our categories to "emerge"
without the bias of preconceptions. The sociocultural
lens we took into this study meant that we viewed
learning as a process of the transformation of guided
participation (2003:94).
do no merely fall on a continuum from total insider to total outsider but instead,
it might be well to consider congeries of possibilities (Herndon 1993: 67).
Indeed, Witzleban states that, Every researcher is an insider in some respects and
an outsider in other (1997:223). During fieldwork, my identity was somewhere
between an insider and outsider. As a traditional flute player, I felt (and often was
accepted as) a musical insider. As a participant-observer, most of my interviewees
heard me play during sessions and therefore were familiar with my level of
playing and understanding of Irish traditional music. This helped during the
interview stage, especially since participants were able to reference specific
issues, such as regional styles, which may be unknown to musical outsiders.
Because interviewees knew me as a musician, they did not feel the need to
explain simple background information about Irish traditional music during our
conversations.44
My perspective is also subject to my outsider identity as an American
ethnographer in Ireland. I became interested in Irish traditional music and its
culture more than ten years ago. At that time, I was a university student studying
jazz and classical saxophone, and I started to become disillusioned with the
countless hours of practice and rehearsing necessary to prepare for performances.
I felt that my music-making was dominated by preparation practicing scales,
arpeggios, and chord progressions rather than playing or creating music. I
became attracted to traditional music sessions, and began to view them as musicmaking opportunities that did not require group rehearsals. I was captivated by
the notion that I could make music with other people without having to rehearse
beforehand. Of course, this was an outsiders perspective on the session, as it
takes a significant amount of time and practice to be able to participate as a
musician within this context. Turino (2008) might suggest that I was attracted to
the participatory nature of traditional music sessions. I started to regularly attend
traditional music sessions in the greater-Boston area, and developed a love of
44
I played alongside fourteen interviewees prior to interviewing them (All except for Martin
Hayes, Niall Vallely, Liz Doherty, Mary Bergin, Connie OConnell, and Toms Cainann). I
interviewed Connie OConnell without playing music or meeting him previously. Because he
was unaware of my musical skill level, during the interview he asked Do you know what a
roll is? The other fourteen musicians I played music with during fieldwork did not have to ask
me questions like this, since they heard me playing rolls numerous occasions.
62
listening and watching Irish traditional music being played in a social context.
This is when my own enculturation into Irish traditional music began. During
sessions, I asked the musicians and other enthusiasts about Irish traditional music,
and started purchasing and listening to commercial recordings of traditional
musicians and groups. I acquired a traditional flute and started playing along to
commercial recordings. My musical enculturation was further nurtured by
attending sessions where my peers and more experienced musicians encouraged
me to play, and provided tips about style and learning repertoire. After making
initial contact at pub sessions, I eventually made friends with a network of
musicians and started also participating in house sessions, concerts, festivals, and
workshops. I continued to learn aurally by listening to recordings, and
participated in a number of musical and educational contexts after moving to
Ireland in 2007.
As an American conducting field research in sessions, I commonly felt
(and was perceived as) a cultural and social outsider. During Friday sessions in
the Corner House, I was often the only musician not born in Ireland, the
youngest, and one of the few women players. However, this outsider status did
not make me feel excluded or limit my participating in musical or social events
during my field research. Because I was often perceived as a musical insider, I
was able to join the session circle. Additionally, although OShea (2005) and
Rapuano (2005) discuss the difficulties of being a female fieldworker in
traditional music sessions, this is not my experience. Rapuano states:
The majority of the musicians are white, middle-aged
men who had definite ideas about the role of women at
sessions my gender presented limitations to gaining
access to musicians and to audience participants. I often
had to be careful not to appear to be too friendly or to
be too knowledgeable, both conditions which
alienated me from my population and/or created barriers
to developing ongoing relationships (2005:54).
alienating her from the session musicians. As a female musician and field
researcher, I enjoy and find no difficulty joining sessions. While acknowledging
gender identity affects fieldwork, my national and social identities seem to have a
more immediate and significant impact. Additionally, my academic standing
often set me apart from the other musicians. As Myers states, However closely
your appearance and behaviour match norms of the community, the social
scientist is always an outsider (1992:23).
In short, during my fieldwork I perceived myself as a musical insider, but
a socio-cultural outsider. Cranitch (2006) also identified himself as a musical
insider, but a cultural outsider to the Sliabh Luachra tradition. Although he is a
well-respected fiddle player in this style, he was born outside of the geographical
area. Cranitch states that the combination of insider and outsider identities helped
to create a fuller and more complete picture of that which is under consideration
(2006:23). In my field research experience, the combination of being a musical
insider and cultural outsider has provided a rich and complex view of the
enculturation of Irish traditional musicians.
Ethical Considerations
Participant-observation and interviewing involve social interactions with
members of a musical community, an undertaking which has ethical dimensions.
As Slobin states, Most ethical concerns arise from interpersonal relations
between scholar and 'informant' as a consequence of fieldwork (1992:329).
Some ethical concerns, which I address below, include the field researchers
responsibilities to fully disclose their intentions, and to respect the privacy and
humanity of all people they encounter during fieldwork. As a musician and
researcher, I was sensitive to the participants needs and respected their rights,
and it was important to me that they felt comfortable and satisfied with their
contributions to the project. Additionally, some of the discourse in the literature
about other fieldworkers experiences led me to be sensitive, or at times even
oversensitive, to my actions in the field. For instance, Rapuano states of her
fieldwork in sessions:
64
I was anxious to avoid causing musicians to feel this way, and did not wish to
disturb or impose on the musicians experience. Because of this, I was shy during
initial fieldwork experiences, but slowly grew in confidence as I formed
relationships and realized that many musicians enjoyed discussing their learning
experiences.
As an ethnographer, it is perhaps natural to hesitate during initial stages of
fieldwork for fear of breaching a code of ethics. Anthropologists and
ethnomusicologists place a heavy emphasis on ethical issues. For instance, Mead
argues that violating ethical codes negatively affects the participants, scholar, and
the quality of the research (1969:375-8). Herndon and McLeod also argue that the
level of rapport which one gains in any area defines the limits of the data. Good
observations and sensitivity aid in establishing rapport with other human beings
which, in turn, enriches the ensuing data (1983:71). To complicate matters, in a
position statement, the Society for Ethnomusicology (SEM) acknowledges
ethical systems and values may differ between ethnomusicologists and their field
consultants (SEM 1998). Slobin also suggests the researchers ethical basis may
differ from the culture under investigation, and for this reason, ethical
considerations have to be adapted to specific contexts (1992:329). I established a
set of ethical guidelines to best suit the project and the participants of this study.
I aimed to protect the rights of all persons I encountered during fieldwork,
including musicians, tourists, audience members, and organizers. All of the event
organizers and most musicians gave their permission before I started fieldwork
observations. During large sessions or festivals, gaining permission from all
participants is difficult or impossible. For instance, in sessions with more than
twenty musicians, it is often not possible to chat with every member. Musicians
can arrive late or leave early without the researcher getting a chance to introduce
themselves and their research. Although fieldwork in sessions may be difficult in
this regard, making ones academic identity and intentions known to the
65
The Society for Ethnomusicology also calls for relationships in the field to be
based on informed consent, rights of privacy and confidentiality (SEM 1998).
Considering this philosophy, when it was not possible to disclose myself as a
researcher, individuals behaviours were not used or analysed. While omitting
useful fieldwork data because permission was not possible is frustrating,
excluding such data is the fieldworkers only ethical option (Mead 1969:365). I
occasionally faced these types of challenges, particularly during my field research
in sessions and on the internet. All of the behaviours, actions, and statements
presented in this dissertation are included because I received expressed
permission from the participants.
Because I engaged in internet fieldwork, there were several relatively new
ethical implications to consider. As Reily states, the Internet raises a number of
ethical issues that are far from resolved (2003:190) and Wilson and Peterson
suggest:
Internet phenomena are leading us to ask new
questions Within this environment of change,
however, we are also in a moment in which the ethical
responsibilities of the researcher are far from clear
(2002:461).
67
study may seek recognition for their work (1992:28). Although many
participants are now named in ethnographic work, it is still a sensitive issue
requiring the ethnographer to take appropriate measures. Myers also states, The
issue of confidentiality has no single simple solution (1992:28). In my research,
ethical issues were approached with flexibility in order to cater to the individual
needs of each interviewee. All participants were given the option to either remain
anonymous or have their name included,46 and all were willing to be named in the
dissertation. On occasion, I quote musicians anonymously if the statement could
be in any way embarrassing or detrimental to the interviewee. Mead argues
ethnographers have an obligation to protect participants from negative
repercussions of contributing to their research, including legal sanctions, ridicule,
or danger (1969:364).
In this thesis, I refer to the traditional musicians as interviewees or
participants, rather than informants. I consider the participating musicians as coauthors or research contributors. Much of the analysis in this dissertation is based
on their experiences and reflections of their enculturation into the Irish traditional
music community. This philosophy of co-authorship is common in modern
ethnomusicology:
Some reflexive accounts emphasize the collaborative
nature of research, making 'informants' co-authors by
narrating dialogues, interpreting cultures as relational
and contested (O'Shea 2005:29).
In his ethnography of Irish traditional music in Doolin, Co. Clare, Kaul takes a similar approach
(2009:11).
68
Playing Irish traditional music in the Cork area has become part of my social and
personal life - a situation that will continue long after the conclusion of this study.
Many of the friendships formed during fieldwork will continue into the future, as
will my appreciation of the participating musicians.
Quite often, when describing the learning process traditional music scholars
inevitably reference multiple learning practices. For instance, Cranitch highlights
that Pdraig OKeeffe learned much of his repertoire from books, gramophone
records, his mothers family (2006:154), and by interacting with other local
musicians in homes and Lyons pub (2006:210). Furthermore, in an exploratory
study of how adult musicians learn Celtic music in Canada, Waldron found that
her participants used a wide variance of learning strategies (Waldron
2009a:64).48 Waldron suggests that this diversity of learning approaches is linked
to the fact that her participants had differing level of aural abilities; she suggests
that some of her participants primarily learned aurally, while more visual learners
used a combination of written sources and aural learning in order to progress as
musicians (2009a:64). Additionally, the Irish traditional musicians who
participated in Veblens research learned repertoire from several sources. Contact
with other musicians such as family friends and relatives was considered
essential. Likewise, media in the form of radio, records and tape machines were
cited as important factors (1991:62). While other scholars highlight how
traditional musicians learn repertoire and instrumental skills from a variety of
Within the literature, other scholars discuss the multiplicity of learning strategies within Irish
traditional music. Fleming states, There are several different venues where children learn
Irish traditional music today, including private lessons, group classes, informal sessions at
houses or pubs, and sessions run by Comhaltas, in addition to learning from recordings
(2004:247). hAllmhurin also states that Some performers learn formally from written
sources, as well as informally from experienced players. Others learn from radio, television,
and sound recordings (2008:8).
48
Waldrons participants learned Celtic music, which includes, but is not limited to, Irish
traditional music. They also learned repertoire and style from other folk musics, including
Scottish music.
47
71
From this perspective of situated learning, learners do not merely need access to
information or resources to learn a practice. Novices need to interact with older,
more experienced practitioners and with peers at their own skill level in order to
become a full member of a community of practice. Access to multiple ways of
engaging with a musical practice encourages participation and learning.
Currently, Irish traditional music is a vibrant and healthy community of practice.
Perhaps this vitality is at least partly due to the multiple opportunities provided to
novices, who learn how to negotiate complicated issues of identity and culture
throughout the enculturation process.
72
Chapter 2
Unstructured Learning Experiences
In this chapter, I explore how musicians learn traditional music and its culture
through interacting with their peers, mentors, and family members. I focus
specifically on music-making and socializing which occur in homes, traditional
music sessions, and other live performance contexts. The non-formal, informal,
and sometimes unconscious learning processes discussed in this chapter primarily
occur during the course of music-making and socializing, and outside of
institutions and organizations. Unconscious learning is closely interconnected to
other learning processes discussed throughout this thesis. Green emphasizes that
informal learning can be either unconscious or conscious in nature (Green
2002:16), and a lack of purposeful effort is often associated with both
unconscious and informal learning practices. Additionally, enculturation is
closely linked to unconscious learning, since enculturation is often defined by a
lack of self-conscious effort and a lack of explicit instruction (Sloboda
1985:196).
This chapter explores various unstructured learning experiences, which
are primarily informal experiences that rarely involve an authority figure who
directs the learning process. Music-making, not learning, is also often the goal
of these activities. While the experiences discussed here are informed by musical
and cultural traditions, the learning processes are not structured or organized by
teachers, institutions, or organizations. It is perhaps easier and more convenient to
refer to the learning practices within this chapter as informal and non-formal,
but this may be misleading. Such a label might suggest to the reader that informal
and non-formal learning processes do not featured as prominently in Chapters 3
and 4, which is not accurate. For this reasons, when necessary, I refer to the
learning practices in this chapter as unstructured.
Before the advent of modern technology and the establishment of
traditional music organizations, enculturation occurred directly through personto-person transmission. Interacting with other practitioners was the only path to
become a traditional musician. While organizations and technology now play a
significant role in the enculturation process, many traditional musicians still
consider face-to-face interactions one of the most meaningful and effective ways
73
74
Aoife Granville is a teacher, researcher, and flute and fiddle player from Dingle, County Kerry.
Her PhD thesis explores Dingles wren tradition (Granville 2012). She teaches at several
summer schools and workshops throughout the year, and has released a solo album entitled
Srid Eoin Shuffle. For more information about the interviewees see Appendix B.
75
musician. When asked how he developed his style, Toms Canainn stated:
Obviously it makes it a lot easier if you associate with
traditional musicians, and you make somebody or some
people your model it certainly has a lot to do with the
surrounding and what sort of music is normal around
there and what sort of music they are picking up (
Canainn, interview).2
Toms Canainn (b. 1930) is an author, lecturer, composer, singer, piper, and accordion
player originally from Derry. He has taught, played music in lived in Cork for over forty
years. In addition to his publications on Irish traditional music and its culture ( Canainn
1993), Toms has written an intriguing memoir about his musical life and travels ( Canainn
1996). For more information about the interviewees see Appendix B.
3
Cormac De Frein (b. 1980) is a flute player from Dn Laoghaire, Co. Dublin. Cormac
originally moved to Cork City to work as an engineer, but retrained and is now working as a
secondary school teacher. Cormac leads many sessions in Cork City and is well-known in the
area for his powerful, driving flute playing. John Reid (b. 1970) was born into a well-known
musical family in Inch, Co. Clare. Many of Johns family are pipers and dancers. John has
lived and worked in Cork for several years as an engineer and professional musician. He
currently works on his land and makes uilleann pipes. Seamus Sands (b. 1963) is a fiddle
player from Newry, Co. Down. He has lived, raised his family, and worked as an engineer in
Cork for more than twenty years. In recent years Seamus has also learned how to make
fiddles, apprenticing and working under Jeremie Legrand. Seamus also released an album in
2013 with the flute player Dermot Rafferty entitled The Green Bunch of Joy: Traditional
Music from Armagh and Down. For more information about the interviewees see Appendix B.
76
77
Although this section discusses interactions between practitioners, in a sense, the entire thesis is
dedicated to this subject. In Chapters 2, 3, and 4, I explore the learning and enculturation
processes which occur during social and musical interactions in a diversity of situations and
settings.
7
Hammy Hamilton (b. 1953) is a teacher, scholar, composer, and flute player from Belfast, Co.
Antrim. After moving to the area several decades ago, Hammy now lives and makes flutes in
his workshop in Cil Aodha, Co. Cork. Along with other locals, Hammy helped to establish,
organize, and teach at Cruinni na bhFliit. For more information about the interviewees see
Appendix B.
78
While peers are generally considered persons of similar status and age, and
mentors are generally older and more experienced, within the Irish traditional
music community, the boundaries between peers and mentors are often blurred.
Younger musicians and peers can act as musical mentors in certain instances, and
relationships between traditional musicians can fall somewhere between the
typical roles of peers and mentors.
Mentors
In communities of practice, mentors and experienced members introduce
newcomers to activities, accepted behaviours, and pertinent skills related to the
practice (Lave and Wenger 1991).9 In this thesis, mentors refer to experienced
practitioners who traditional musicians look and listen to for inspiration and
imitation. Mentors can include teachers, family members, commercially recorded
artists, and other traditional musicians in the community. Mentors are often older
and more experienced, but younger traditional musicians can also act as mentors
in certain cases. Indeed, as I explore below, musicians often learn a great deal
(socially, culturally, and musically) from their peers and musicians who are only
slightly older than themselves. Although the term has connotations of instruction
and teaching, mentors can purposefully advise or unintentionally guide novice
traditional musicians by providing a model for imitation. Interactions between
learners and mentors involve both conscious and unconscious learning processes.
Within the interview data, all twenty participants discussed musicians that
they looked up to and admired. Lisa OSullivan states, Everybody has an
influence and everybody subconsciously takes an influence from their heroes or
8
Glottal stopping is a throat technique traditional flute players use to emphasize and articulate
phrases, pulses, or particular note.
9
Waldron also uses the term mentors to describe more experienced musicians who encourage,
teach, or guide others (Waldron 2006b). In many instances, this is a more appropriate term
than teachers.
79
While Seamus learned a great deal during these spontaneous encounters, they
were not lessons. Rather than moments of teaching, these interactions were
based on sharing and collaborating through fiddle playing. Seamuss narratives
illustrate that he gained social and cultural understanding from his mentors, as
well as musical information. Interestingly, Seamus contrasts these encounters to
learning from written sources. He suggests that playing tunes from written
Lisa OSullivan is a fiddle player from Freemount, Co. Cork. She works as an artist, educator,
and part-time professional musician in the Cork City area. Alongside her brother, Michael
OSullivan, Lisa is a founding member of the group, the Cil All-Stars. For more information
about the interviewees see Appendix B.
11
As discussed in Chapter 4, Ceol Rince na hireann is one of many printed collections of Irish
traditional music (Breathnach 1963, 1976).
10
80
Rather than lessons, Connies encounters with Denis Murphy were based on
informal music-making and socializing. Connie visited Denis Murphy and
Johnny OLeary to get to know them as people, as well as to learn their music.
Both Seamus and Connie place great emphasis on the importance of
understanding the socio-cultural aspects of Irish traditional music, not just
mastering the technique and repertoire. Their musical enculturation was fostered
through their interest in social and cultural matters and by getting to know and
play with their musical mentors.
Because of the often casual and social nature of interactions between
mentors and learners, the learning which occurs is often informal, coincidental, or
unconscious. For this reason, there is a danger that the importance of these
interactions can be overlooked. Take, for instance, Conal Grdas description
of interactions with his mentor, Seamus Mac Mathna. While their relationship
was informal and casual, Conals statement below highlights the influence
Seamus had on Conal:
He didn't actually teach me but he kind of exposed me
to recordings of flute players. When I was growing up it
was really only a couple of records you could listen too;
Seamus Tansey, one of Roger Sherlocks, Paddy Carty,
and that's about it. But he would have played tapes of
McKenna, John Joe Gardner, and exposed me to a
whole world of flute playing. That had a huge impact on
me (Conal O Grda, interview).
81
Seamus did not teach Conal, but acted as a mentor by providing listening
material, inspiration, and advice.
Overall, interviewees learned a great deal, both musically and socioculturally, by interacting with older, more experienced practitioners of Irish
traditional music. Mentors provide important models for imitation, and
influenced every interviewee. Many of the interviewees considered these
experiences to be the most influential ones in terms of their musical
development.12
Peers
In general, the significant role played by mentors in the transmission of Irish
traditional music is commonly emphasized within the traditional music
community and the literature.13 However, in comparison little is written about the
role peers play in learning and transmission processes. Perhaps older, more
experienced musicians are considered more authentic, representative, or
appropriate models for learners to imitate. In many instances, this indeed can be
the case. While mentors play a significant role in the enculturation process, peers,
too, play an equally important role. Interaction with peers provides particular
educational, social, and musical needs.
Many young musicians are exceptional players, and act as models for
imitation for their peers. Wenger argues that more experienced peers act as a
source of information and represent the history of the practice as a way of life.
They are living testimonies to what is possible, expected, desirable (Wenger
1998:156). Traditional musicians who interact and look to their peers can
informally absorb both musical and socio-cultural behaviours, and many
examples of this are found within the interview data. For instance, Ciara N
Fhearghail was encouraged by and learned from her two older brothers, Sen and
Caoimhn Fearghail, both exceptional multi-instrumentalists from County
Waterford (interview).14 Despite the closeness of their ages, Ciara looked to her
brothers for inspiration, advice, and help during the learning process. Ciara
12
Further examples of interactions with musical mentors are outlined in other sections of this
thesis, including sections on family, summer schools, and tuition.
13
A few biographies and ethnographies, for example, highlight how well-known Irish traditional
musicians have learned from mentors (often family members or neighbors) (Mac Aoidh 1994;
Meek 1987; Vallely, Piggott, and Nutan 1998).
14
They are not exceptional for their age, but for any age group. Caoimhn was the recipient of the
TG4 Gradam Ceoil award for Young Musician of the Year in 2012.
82
gained musical knowledge from her brothers and their behaviour showed her that
participation in Irish traditional music was possible and enjoyable.
Traditional musicians of the same peer group often chat, listen, learn, and
play traditional music together in each others homes. These informal and private
music-making experiences have many educational and social benefits. Novice
musicians who are not ready to play fast dance tempos in a session setting may
find informal music-making at a friends house less pressurized, yet still a social,
enjoyable, and motivational activity.15 In private settings, peers are able to
converse for a long period of time, play slowly, and can start and stop the music
at their convenience, which is generally not appreciated by publicans and patrons
of pubs. The interview data revealed that calling around to friends houses to play
tunes is a common experience. During the early stages of the learning process,
Cormac De Frein did not take lessons or have a flute teacher, but he often called
around to other flute players for advice, to learn new tunes, or to play music (De
Frein, interview). He states:
There was a few people that I knew growing up that I
use to call around to and ask how do you do this.
There was Eamonn de Barra from school and Tom
Doorley lived up the street, the flute player from Danu.
He was about five years older than me, but he was just
two years older than my sister. All the lads on the street
use to play football and he was one of them. So I used to
go up to him a bit, I don't know if you would call them
classes, but just call around for a while, just say, Show
us how to do this. (De Frein, interview).
Cormac often purposefully, but informally learned through playing music with
his peers. He asked specific questions about technique or an aspect of style, but
Cormac does not consider these lessons. Cormacs relationship with Tom Doorley
is an example of the blurred boundaries between peer or peer-mentor
relationships. One might view Tom as Cormacs mentor, since Cormac looked to
him for advice and inspiration. However, although Tom is a few years older, he is
still in Cormacs peer group. Cormac is one of several interviewees who were
self-taught. Without a teacher, gaining informal advice and support from peers
throughout the learning and enculturation process is invaluable.
15
In my own learning experiences, I enjoy playing pub sessions on the flute. However, as a
beginning fiddle player, my technique is not yet developed enough to play in sessions
comfortably. For me, playing at home is a better learning experience, as I often play with
other musicians who are at a similar skill level.
83
Even when older musicians were present, Hammy often preferred to pose
questions to his peers. This illustrates an advantage of peer-directed learning;
some learners are more comfortable seeking advice from peers, rather than from
mentors or teacher figures. I propose that the extent of the influence peers have
on a musicians enculturation depends on two factors - the individuals learning
style or preference, and the availability of other educational resources, including
materials and human resources. Hammy often felt more comfortable learning
directly from his peers, and he relied on them since he did not have a teacher.
Depending on the availability of resources and learning styles, other learners may
rely more on their teacher or an older mentor in order to learn their repertoire and
musical skills.
The interview data suggests that playing music with peers on a regular
basis affects the development of style.17 Cormac De Frein describes how his own
16
Hammy referred to a number of flute players as part of this group, including himself, Desi
Wilkinson, Frankie Kennedy, Tara Bingham, Gary Hastings, and Harry Bradley (Hamilton,
interview).
17
(Mick Daly, Cormac De Frein, James Duggan, Hammy Hamilton, Connie OConnell, Lisa
OSullivan, Michael OSullivan, Seamus Sands interviews). Mick Daly (b. 1950) is a singer,
guitar and banjo player from Cork City. Mick has performed with several Irish traditional
music, folk, and old time music groups, including Any Old Time, The Lee Valley String
Band, The Mary Black Band, Scullion, and Four Men and a Dog. Mick leads sessions in the
Corner House pub. James Duggan (b. 1989) is a teacher and fiddle player from Listowel, Co.
Kerry. James graduated from University College Cork as a student of English and Irish. James
also teaches at the Douglas CC branch. Michael OSullivan is a banjo player from
84
style developed:
I think it's through listening. You take pieces from
different people you like and end up with your own
style. No one, well, very few people come up with their
own style completely from scratch. They're doing the
same thing as other musicians around their age or a bit
older than them (De Frein, interview).
Both Michael and Cormac emphasize that style develops unconsciously through
repeated listening and playing with peers. They highlight the process of
borrowing elements of style from other musicians, but do not purposefully aim to
replicate any one musicians style entirely. Their own personal style of playing
emerges from years of experience playing and listening, and by amalgamating
aspects of other musicians styles.
As indicated above, interactions with peers can influence style and aid in
the acquisition of repertoire and techniques. I also propose that peer-directed
learning provides learners with relevant social experiences within Irish traditional
music, and therefore nurtures musical enculturation. Enculturation is more likely
to occur when a novice participates in Irish traditional music and feels that this
practice is relevant to their social and cultural life. This is a significant advantage
Freemount, Co. Cork. Michael is a founding member and frequently performs with the Cil
All-Stars. For more information about the interviewees see Appendix B.
85
Family Influences
Family plays a significant and complex role in the enculturation of Irish
traditional musicians. The importance of family connections frequently emerged
within the interview data. For some interviewees, social and musical interactions
with family members were the most profound learning experiences in terms of
their enculturation and development as musicians. Eighteen out of the twenty
interviewees described significant musical experiences with family members, and
eight listed their families as the primary musical influence in their lives.
However, the types of family interactions described by interviewees are by no
means homogeneous. The interview data also reveals a wide variety of sociomusical interactions within families. Therefore, the influence of family is difficult
to generalize. The participating musicians came from a variety of different family
backgrounds. Some interviewees experienced a great deal of musical interactions
with their immediate and extended families, while others experience little to
none. This section explores these diverse family connections, and how this affects
musical enculturation.
The experience of learning from a family member in ones own peer
group, such as cousins or siblings, is significantly different than learning from
older family members, such as parents, grandparents, aunts, or uncles. In this
section, I explore four categories of social and musical interactions, including
exchanges with:
o parents18
o siblings
o members of the extended family
o family members who are not musicians, singers, or dancers
Interestingly, only a small number of interviewees developed their instrumental
abilities directly from their parents. In contrast, within my interview data
interactions with siblings constitute a much more common experience. Members
of the extended family, including aunts, uncles, cousins, grandparents, etc., also
play an important role in enculturation, especially for interviewees who did not
play music with members of their immediate family. In this section, I also explore
how family members who are not active in music-making can play a role in the
18
This category also includes caregivers and guardians of children. Parents is used here for sake
of brevity. In this study, however, all my interviewees discussed interactions with their birth
parents.
87
88
his book, Gaul details the lives of several influential traditional musicians and
singers, the majority of whom, including Seamus Ennis, Sean Maguire, and the
Rowsome and Doran families, were born into musical households (Gaul 2006). In
his historical ethnography, Mac Aoidh also highlights the importance of families
to Irish traditional music in Donegal, and details the educational and social links
between musical families and fiddle players. For example, Mac Aoidh outlines
the musical history of each area of Donegal by describing the multiple
generations of fiddle players who played and influenced music-making in each
locality:
More so than any other district in County Donegal, the
southwest had seen a series of family-based fiddling
dynasties. Almost every village had one and in some
district most townlands In places, the history of
playing here seems to go back to the very roots of the
music Possibly the earliest established of the local
fiddle dynasties was that of the intriguing Mac
Fhionnlaiochs, or McGinleys of Loch Inse (Mac Aoidh
1994:266).
Mac Aoidh also discusses other influential clans, such as the Doherty, Gallagher,
McConnell, Campbell, and Boyle families. From Mac Aoidhs perspective,
family plays a central role in transmission practices in Donegal.
Within the literature and everyday discourse, influential families with a
long tradition of participation within Irish traditional music are occasionally
referred to as dynasties. For example, the Rowsome family in Dublin and the
Doherty family in Donegal helped to sustain traditional music during its low ebb,
around the 1930s until the 1950s. These families did not merely transmit music
within their own families; families from the traveling community, such as the
Dorans and Dohertys, taught students and influenced other musicians
throughout the country. Willie Clancy, for example, first heard the uilleann pipes
as a teenager when he met the traveling piper, Johnny Doran, at a local fair
(Kearns and Taylor 2003:24-5). Doran had a huge effect on the young Clancy,
who eventually became an exceptional piper. In this way, the influence of
musical dynasties can be widespread.
Within the interview data, there are a number of references to influential
musical families with unbroken traditions of music-making. John Reid states:
2008; Silleabhin 1999), Pdraig O'Keeffe (Hanifin 1995; Cranitch 2006), and Junior
Crehan (Hast and Scott 2004:9).
89
John also suggests that the unbroken chain of musicians in his family allowed
him to imitate traditional music which was closer to the root (Reid, interview).
He considers family as a major influence on his musical enculturation and
development. Consequently, he carefully illustrates his own family connections,
especially highlighting well-known family members and multiple generations of
music-making. From Johns perspective, family connections are not simply a
matter of prestige and pedigree, they are also a direct source of musical
knowledge from the past. Within the literature, learning from older family
members is described as one of the highest status methods of transmission within
Irish traditional music (Hamilton 1978:42; OShea 2006-7:7). While it is not the
purpose of this study to explore the authenticity of learning practices, noting the
status of this particular learning experience establishes a useful cultural context
for our discussion here.
Parents
My interview data reveals that traditional musicians experience a wide variety of
socio-musical interactions with their parents. Some interviewees had multiple and
consistent musical interactions with their parents who were active or occasional
instrumentalists, singers, and/or dancers. Other interviewees experienced little to
no music-making with their parents, as they were not players, singers, or dances.
Furthermore, interviewees with musically active parents did not have uniform
experiences; Some were directly taught by their parents, while other interviewees
only had informal or casual musical interactions with their parents. The level of
formality often depended on family dynamics and personalities within the family.
Only five musicians - Mary Bergin, Matt Cranitch, Martin Hayes, John
Reid, and Niall Vallely - were raised by instrumentalists.21 I anticipated a higher
21
Mary Bergin (b. 1949) is a tin whistle player from Shankill, Co. Dublin. Born into a musical
family, Mary started learning the whistle at the age of nine, and is now acknowledged as one
of the most accomplished tin whistle players of her generation. She performed and recorded
with the group Dordan, and has released two remarkable solo albums, Feadga Stin (1979)
90
number, because it is often believed that musicians who've reached the pinnacle
with their music normally come from a musical family (Reid, interview).
Veblens research also suggests that Irish traditional musicians are commonly
introduced to music-making by their mothers and fathers (1991:11), and thirteen
out of fifteen of Veblens interviewees came from musical families where one or
more of the family members sang, played or danced (1991:58).22 Based on my
interviewees narratives, however, learning a traditional instrument directly from
parents is not a common experience.
The five interviewees raised by musical parents list their families as
primary influences in terms of their musical education and development. Their
narratives also reveal diverse socio-musical relationships with their parents. For
instance, Niall Vallely was taught by his parents in structured classes, but also
learned a great deal from his mother and father non-formally and informally.
John Reid, Matt Cranitch, and Martin Hayes describe formal, non-formal, and
informal interactions with their fathers, while Mary Bergin picked up her fathers
repertoire entirely by what she describes as osmosis. Learning by osmosis is an
informal, subconscious process of musical absorption.23 The considerable
differences in these experiences create a rich and complex area of investigation.
The effect parents have on enculturation is difficult to generalize and must be
assessed on a case-by-case basis.
Niall Vallelys learning experiences with his parents were structured and
relatively formal:
and Feadga Stin 2 (1993). In 2000, Mary won TG4s Gradam Ceoil award for Musician of
the Year. Several years ago, Mary moved to An Spidal, Co. Galway, where she now teaches
locally. Martin Hayes (b. 1962) is fiddle player and teacher from Maghera, Co. Clare. Raised
in a musical household near Feakle, Martin is known as one of the most masterful and
expressive fiddle players within contemporary Irish traditional music. He currently lives in
Connecticut, USA, but often tours Ireland and the world with guitarist, Dennis Cahill. Martin
and Dennis have also collaborated on commercial recordings, and Martin has released two
solo albums (see Discography). Niall Vallely (b. 1970) is a concertina player from Armagh,
and is well-known for his innovative and creative work as a musician and composer. He has a
distinct contemporary style, developed from eclectic musical influences. Niall has recorded
and toured with his groups, Nomos and Buille. For more information about the interviewees
see Appendix B.
22
Veblens findings about family influences are relatively general. Although she suggests
musicians are often introduced to traditional music by their parents, Veblen does not detail if
this is done primarily through singing, dancing, playing, or listening practices.
23
Berliner states: Reflecting on their early childhoods, many jazz artists describe the process by
which they acquired an initial base of musical knowledge as one of osmosis. They cultivated
skills during activities as much social as musical, absorbing models from varied
performances (1994:22).
91
Niall was influenced by his parents in numerous ways. They introduced Niall to
traditional music, instilling in him an interest and passion to learn it. Niall asserts
that his parents continued to shape his musical tastes and sensibilities into his
teenage years. Additionally, Niall learned much of his early repertoire and basic
instrumental technique in his parents structured weekly classes at the pipers
club. Niall also experienced a great deal of informal learning outside of structured
classes, as his parents brought him to sessions, dances, house parties, festivals,
and other social and musical gatherings. From an educational point of view,
Nialls formal learning experiences were reinforced by informal musical and
social interactions with his parents and his parents peers. This combination of
experiences grounded Nialls musical development in everyday social life. He
was enculturated into the Irish traditional music community from a young age.
John Reid, Matt Cranitch, and Martin Hayes describe informal, nonformal, and formal socio-musical interactions with their parents. They were
occasionally taught or guided by their fathers, but did not experience the level of
formality or structure Niall experienced in his parents classes. Matt Cranitch
describes his experiences with his father:
I first started the fiddle at home with my father teaching
me but, as my mother has often related, the lessons
tended to take the form of hed play the fiddle and I
would sit watching him playing. The actual teaching
didnt amount to a huge amount. So they sent me to when I was about nine - to Cork School of Music
(Cranitch, interview).
Matts informal lessons with his father were mainly based on observation and
demonstration. Although unstructured, these lessons provided a model and initial
exposure to traditional fiddle playing, and influenced Matts enculturation until
age nine. Recognizing the haphazard nature of these encounters, Matt was
enrolled in classical violin classes in order to receive some formal training and
92
understanding of music. Although lessons between father and son stopped, Matt
and his father frequently played music together throughout the enculturation
process, particularly in a family band situation (Cranitch, interview). Matt
continued to learn from his father informally and non-formally during these
interactions. The longevity and consistency of these family interactions were vital
to Matts enculturation.
Martin Hayes experienced a spectrum of formal, non-formal, and informal
socio-musical interactions with his father, PJ Hayes. Martin explains:
He encouraged me a lot, but he never asked me to
practice or suggested anything, or pushed me in
anyway. But he was always available for an opinion or
to get a point of view on something, or to get some
sense of direction. He didnt like a direct one-on-one
teaching scenario too much, although I did learn my
first selection of tunes directly from him by sitting
across from him in the kitchen. He played and Id listen,
watch, and copy him. So I basically learned my music
that way (Hayes, interview).
The types of socio-musical interaction between Martin and his father changed
throughout the different stages of the learning process. Initially, PJ provided
direct instruction based on informal guidance, observations, and imitation. PJs
instruction can be considered informal or non-formal in nature since he did not
have a predetermined agenda; he did not require Martin to practice, or formally
assess his ability or progress. Martin did not receive tuition from his father
consistently throughout his learning processes, in part because PJ did not
particularly like direct teaching situations.
As Martin developed as a fiddle player, interactions between father and
son became even more informal. Martin describes his learning experiences after a
period of learning from his father in his kitchen:
But after that, it was like tapes and records, and it was
me locked away in a room with a fiddle having an idea
that I wanted to sound like. I would learn tunes, and try
this with them, and try them that way, then play them
for my dad and get his opinion. And he didnt play any
pop psychology with me, no reverse psychology. There
was no need for him to nurture me or anything like that.
He would tell me exactly what I was doing, so I knew
when he told me something it really was exactly what
he thought. It wasnt what he thought I should hear in
order to encourage me; He would just tell me it was no
good, if it was no good. If it was good, he would just
93
their parents either gave up playing at a certain point or only played the
instruments very occasionally. Ciara, Toms, and Connie did not learn technique
or repertoire from their parents, but they experienced traditional instruments and
music-making from an early age. Because their parents were interested in music
and supportive of their childrens musical interests, Ciara, Toms, and Connie
were raised in a musical atmosphere which encouraged their musical curiosity
and enculturation.
Many interviewees first memories of Irish traditional music involved
observing a parents singing.24 These memories were particularly profound for
interviewees who did not have instrumental musicians within their families.
During these experiences, interviewees also often developed or expanded their
interest in traditional music. Geraldine OCallaghan discusses singing practices
within her family environment:
My mother and my grandmother sing, but there was no
instrumental tradition really in my family. I have an
uncle who played a little bit of tin whistle and he would
have been very encouraging when I was growing up, but
there wasnt music being played at home or anything
like that (OCallaghan, interview).
When children are exposed to singing, they begin to absorb musical syntax,
which is a crucial first step musical development (Bluestine 2000, Gordon 1997).
From this, I suggest that families who do not have a tradition of instrumental
music-making can play a significant role in musical enculturation and learning
processes. Singing and dancing practices can expose children to melodic,
24
This is clear in my interviews with Aoife Granville, Geraldine OCallaghan, Hammy Hamilton,
Cormac De Frein, Lisa OSullivan, James Duggan, Toms Canainn, Ciara N Fhearghail,
and Connie OConnell.
96
rhythmic, and stylistic nuances of Irish traditional music. This musical exposure
can encourage musical interest and provide a foundation for future development,
learning, and enculturation.
As discussed later, my research also suggests that parents who do not
actively play music, sing, or dance play a role in enculturation. Interviewees who
were not raised by instrumentalists, dancers, or singers recalled memories of
listening and discussing music with their parents. Such parents often exposed
their children to Irish traditional music via commercial recordings, radio,
television, live concerts, and festivals. Listening together is an important sociomusical experience and for many, this served as an introduction to traditional
music. The interview data also suggests that parents motivate children and
provide support and encouragement throughout the stages of musical
development.
25
Interviewees in my study were exposed to music at a young age, but structured learning in
classes, workshops, and summer schools often occurred later in childhood, around ages 7-9 (if
at all).
26
See (Bluestine 2000; Fox 1990, 1991; Gordon 1997, 1998, 1999; Ostwald 1990; Rogers 1990;
Shetler 1990; Valerio et al 1998). Many cultures also recognize the importance of early
exposure and participation in music-making. Afghani musicians believe that early exposure
to the sounds of music was especially important in the development of musical ability (Baily
and Doubleday 1990:95).
97
Infants, toddlers, and young children seamlessly and efficiently absorb the musics
of their culture through play and interaction. Because children absorb and imitate
the social world around them, enculturation occurs naturally during early
childhood experiences of music-making.
Early exposure to music often correlates to a sense that musical
participation and learning is a natural process. Several of my interviewees
describe their music learning experiences during early childhood as easy, fun, or
natural. For instance, Niall Vallely states:
I learned the first couple of tunes on the whistle when I
was very small, I was about 4 or something.... I never
thought of it being difficult... I learned so much stuff
when I was so young that a lot of it just seemed second
nature. I dont remember the earliest things to be honest
(Vallely, interview).
Although his earliest memories are not acutely detailed, Nialls immediate
memory and impressions depict his early learning experiences as natural and
enjoyable. One might suggest that Niall has, perhaps, forgotten the challenges
during these early stages of the learning process. Although this may be the case, it
is significant that Niall remembers the learning experience as relatively easy and
natural, not as an endeavor which required sacrifice or discipline, for example. It
is also significant that Nialls enculturation began prior to his earliest memories,
because this indicates that Nialls introduction to music-making began at a very
young age. Music was entwined with everyday social life in the Vallely
household. At the age of four, Niall did not analyse the learning process. His
musical experiences were based around playing, absorbing, listening, and
imitating the world around him. His parents passion for music created a rich
musical environment, encouraging Nialls enculturation and development.
Other interviewees described similar types of natural learning
processes.27 For instance, in Matt Cranitchs family, music-making was a part of
27
(Mary Bergin, Martin Hayes, Niall Vallely, John Reid, Connie OConnell, Liz Doherty, Toms
Canainn, Lisa OSullivan and Matt Cranitch, interviews).
98
everyday social life. Matt was naturally and gradually introduced (enculturated)
to musical life. His musical enculturation is similar to how we learn language
through consistent exposure, interaction, play, and imitation. Matt Cranitch
discusses his learning experiences:
I grew up in a musical family. I was playing the fiddle
since I was eight years of age. My father played the
fiddle and accordion. We had a family band situation at
home. We went to the fleadh cheoil, feis, and social
occasions played at school concerts, parish concerts and
so on. So I suppose music was part of what I always did.
When other people went to lots of games and matches,
and I went to some, but for us music was just a part of
the growing up process (Cranitch, interview).
Early exposure to music is a significant factor in how Niall Vallely and Matt
Cranitch developed into such confident, able, and creative traditional musicians. I
suggest that learning, developmental, and musical enculturation processes are
naturally fostered when parents provide their children with early exposure to
music-making.
Within the Irish traditional music literature, there are several references to
music being passed down, inherited, or being in the blood. For instance, Gaul
writes about Sean McGuire, the virtuoso fiddle player from Belfast: His father
played the piccolo, flute and tin whistle. He had inherited his music from his own
father, so music was in the blood (2006:99). Music being in the blood is used
either literally or metaphorically within traditional music discourse. Tommy
Peoples also states: Irish musics ornamentation cannot be written or vice versa,
played properly from the written notes. It has to be in the blood (1994:13). This
view may lead some to believe that music is genetically inherited. However,
within ethnomusicological and educational literature, scholars emphasize that
musical environment plays a greater role in enculturation than biological
inheritance. For instance, Blacking argues that no convincing correlations have
been shown between a person's excellence in music and possession of abilities
that are claimed to be inherited (1992:311).28 Additionally, Gordon states,
Though one may wish to believe that a child inherited his music potential from
his parents or grandparents, such a conclusion is not warranted (1990:327).
Gordon also argues there is no evidence to suggest that it is inherited. This
28
For similar assertions within the ethnomusicological literature see (Baily and Doubleday
1990:97; Blacking 1990:76; Chanan 2002:374).
99
means that the level of music aptitude with which a child will be born cannot be
predicted on the basis of ancestry (1999:44). Children raised by traditional
musicians may have a musical advantage over children who are not raised by
singers, musicians, or dancers. However, I propose that this is not because of a
musical inheritance. Children of musicians often develop into highly skilled
musicians because they are able to absorb music and experience a rich musical
environment during early childhood - a critical time of human development.
Although musical parents play a significant role in the enculturation process,
John Reid, Matt Cranitch, Martin Hayes, Niall Vallely and Mary Bergin did not
develop musicality due to heredity or genetic make-up. They absorbed and
imitated their musical environment. Because music was a central part of family
life, it was likely to be considered an important life skill.
In addition to early exposure, parents active in traditional music-making
provide opportunities for their children to experience longevity of participation
within Irish traditional music. In a discussion of Old-time music culture and
identity formations, Turino proposes that longevity is necessary for stylistic and
creative development:
Longevity of socialization within and investment to the
activity influences the degree of competence, comfort,
and creative freedom during performance. Usually
people who grow up with a style are simply more
comfortable than those who did not, because the habits
of performance were formed at an early age (2008:162).
100
30
Fox also states that Music educators must also be conscious of the emotional environment
created in and through musical interactions; these encounters provide a crucial portion of the
human context for musical development (1991:46).
101
musical life. In Paddy Keenans case, he rebelled for a time against his father,
took a break from traditional music, and developed an interest in the blues.
However, Paddy remained an active Irish traditional musician throughout most of
his life.
Siblings
According to the interview data, musical interactions with siblings are much
more common than interactions with parents. While only five interviewees
played and learned instrumental music alongside their parents, the majority of the
interviewees had significant learning and playing experiences with their siblings
in various settings.31 In a case study with two Irish traditional musicians and
teachers, Waldron also highlights that learning alongside siblings is a significant
learning experience (2006b). As discussed throughout this section, these
commonplace experiences significantly impact musical enculturation. Below, I
describe how interactions with family members of the same peer group often
provide motivation and inspiration.
Compared to interacting with parents, musical and social engagement
with siblings provides a different type of learning experience. Interacting within a
peer group often nurtures a sense of belonging to a community of practice. When
a young musician frequently participates in traditional music-making with their
peers, they are much more likely to identify Irish traditional music as their own
culture. Such musicians do not consider traditional music an outdated activity of
past generations, but view it as a current and relevant part of socio-cultural life.
In this way, interacting with siblings is connected to the discussion above about
the role peers play during the learning process. In addition to learning from an
older generation, musical enculturation is nurtured when family members of a
similar age interact with one another, particularly due to the social implications of
these interactions.
For musicians born in musical households, interacting with parents and
siblings created an environment conducive to enculturation. The five interviewees
with parents who were instrumentalists also interacted with their siblings, which
diversifies their educational and musical experiences. When asked if he thought
31
Interviewees, including Matt Cranitch, Cormac De Frein, Liz Doherty, James Duggan, Conal
Grda, Aoife Granville, Helen Gubbins, Ciara N Fhearghail, Lisa OSullivan, Michael
OSullivan, and Niall Vallely, played and learned Irish traditional music alongside their
siblings (interviews).
102
Matt benefited from musical interactions with his parents, and this experience
was enriched by numerous interactions with his siblings. Music was a part of the
family dynamic, and Matt was socialized into this environment. Music-making
with his siblings reinforced the idea that music is a social activity relevant to
Matts own generation.
For the fifteen interviewees who did not play music with their parents,
musical interactions with siblings were particularly influential in terms of
learning and enculturation processes. Playing and learning traditional music
alongside siblings creates a musical environment in the home, aiding
enculturation. For instance, although Conal Grdas parents were not
instrumentalists, they supported their childrens musical education. When Conal
was young, his father identified Conals potential on the tin whistle and signed
him up for lessons at the Cork Pipers Club ( Grda, interview). Conals sister
Mire also enrolled, and both musicians are strongly influenced by Michel O
Rabhaigh, their teacher at the pipers club. Siblings often form close musical
bonds, because they come from similar backgrounds and often share influences,
including teachers.
Younger siblings often look up to their older siblings for social cues and
modes of behaviour. Having older, more experienced musicians in the house is a
major benefit. Even if siblings are only slightly older and more experienced as
musicians, they provide a useful musical model for imitation. For instance,
family influences played a key role in Ciara N Fhearghails enculturation. While
her father only occasionally played music, her two older brothers were
significantly influential. Ciara states:
Music was always in my family and I was always
listening to different types of music at home. My brother
played fiddle from an early age, so he kind of influenced
me to startMy father use to play a bit, but not much. It
103
Ciara and her brothers learned from a local accordion player, Bobby Gardiner.
This common connection between the siblings helped coordinate their musicmaking at home. Ciara also states that Bobby didn't always want to give us
notes. He tried to get us learning half the tune by ear. My brothers always helped
me anyway and taught me as well at home (N Fhearghail, interview). While
aural learning can be challenging or intimidating to some novices, Ciara was able
to rely on her brothers for extra support and help while learning repertoire aurally
at home.
Helen Gubbins also learned alongside her siblings during tuition at her
local Comhaltas branch.32 Like Ciara, Helen looked up to her older siblings for
inspiration about future possibilities:
I was the youngest of six kids and so I looked up to my
other siblings. They could already do what I wanted to
be able to do and I could see them doing it every day
around me. And that was just a good motivator and it
wasnt just in music but it was in everything, all
education. They went to college and they got a certain
mark and I thought if I was a relation to them, I should
be capable of doing it, achieving a standard comparable
to that. Its not beyond me, or potentially I could do the
same. All those kind of motivating factors encouraged
me in music and in general encouragement I got from
my siblings (Gubbins, interview).
Sharons parents were dancers, so the Shannon children were raised in a musical
environment. However, they did not learn instrumental music from their parents.
Gary Shannon developed an interest in instrumental music-making, influencing
32
Helen Gubbins (b. 1983) is an accordion, whistle, and piano player from Lisnagry, Limerick.
She studied music at undergraduate and graduate levels at University College Cork. She has
also toured with various groups, including Five Mile Chase, Owenabue Valley Group, and
The Irish Rambling House. In 2010, she released a duet album with Tim Langen, entitled Boys
of 25 and the Connaught Heifers. For more information about the interviewees see Appendix
B.
104
his younger sisters in a profound way. Similarly, Liz Dohertys parents did not
play Irish traditional music, but all her siblings played and danced from a young
age. She describes the musical activities in her home:
There was a lot of music in the house because we all
practiced our dancing for an hour every evening, and
our music together for an hour every evening. So there
was music in the house for two solid hours every single
evening, but we werent listening to the new recordings,
it wasnt on the radio or TV. There was music-making,
but we would have never sat down and played together
outside of practice time. It was quite different, and that
wasnt unusual in our area at the time (Doherty,
interview).
While younger children often look up to their older siblings, older siblings are
also influenced by interactions with younger peers and siblings. Liz, the eldest
daughter in the family, considers interactions with her younger siblings
significant, and she speaks about these memories positively.
Social and musical interactions with siblings were particularly significant
to those interviewees who did not play, sing, or dance with their parents. Parents
often bring their children to the same teacher or Comhaltas branch for lessons,
and this allows the children to practice a shared repertoire together at home.
Musical interactions with siblings were also important to interviewees raised by
musical parents. For these musicians, interacting with family members of the
same generation provides another way to engage in Irish traditional musicmaking. Although interactions with older musicians, such as parents or
grandparents, are often considered high status learning experiences, we must not
overlook the significant role siblings, cousins, and peers play in the learning
process.
Aoife Granville also discusses the music-making and singing traditions in her
extended family:
Both sets of grandparents were singers, so I would have
always been aware of that from a young age - sean-ns
singing. Also my granddad, from Galway would have
been a very good singer in English and my cousins all
played on my mom's side, so that would have been the
first exposure to it (Granville, interview).
Musical and social interactions with members of the extended family were
particularly influential to interviewees who did not learn instrumental music from
their parents. When music-making did not occur in the home environment,
having one or a number of traditional musicians within the extended family
provided an introduction to Irish traditional music culture. Many interviewees
became more interested in traditional music as a result of these interactions.
Although James Duggan and Liz Dohertys parents were not musicians, their
decision to play fiddle was influenced by a tradition of fiddle playing within their
106
extended families. James had access to a fiddle at home because his grandfather
and great-grandfather were fiddle players. He developed an interest in the fiddle,
so the old family fiddle was repaired and James began classes (Duggan,
interview). Liz Doherty also discusses how she decided to learn to play the
fiddle:
My moms uncle played the fiddle and he used to play
for the dancing competitions locally and thats why I
was given the fiddle So it was like, sure try the fiddle
because theres one there (Doherty, interview).
James and Liz had access to the instrument itself and the ability to talk to family
members about fiddle playing. Access to instruments and a community of
practitioners is essential in terms of enculturation.
Interviewees reared by musical parents also described important musical
interactions with members of their extended families. For example, Martin Hayes
spoke fondly of playing alongside his uncle, Paddy Canny, in the Tulla Cil
Band. Martin says that his father and Paddy have distinct fiddle styles, and
consequently, Martin acquired different skills and stylistic nuances from each
fiddle player. Martin suggests he gained his rhythmic approach by listening to his
fathers fiddle playing, while he was influenced heavily by Paddys lyricism
(Hayes, interview). As another example, Tommy Peoples was influenced by his
fathers playing as well as his cousin, Joe Cassidy, whom Tommy visited for
fiddle lessons (Mac Aoidh 1994:197). According to Mac Aoidh, Tommy and
Joes lessons consisted of:
playing tunes and learning new ones. Joe placed an
emphasis on strict staccato bowing and passed on his
ability to read to Tommy. These Sunday trips to his
cousins house were always anxiously awaited by
Tommy a trip to Joe Cassidys was tantamount to an
adventure (1994:197).
Nettl states the concept, of acquiring music directly from supernatural sources are very
widespread among human societies, simple and complex (2005:29). The Blackfoot people
believe music is learned through supernatural visions (Nettl 2005:393). Within Irish
traditional music, Seamus Tansey often evokes landscape in his discussions of style and
expression (1999, 2008). Junior Crehan also makes numerous references to the faeries
influence on music-making (see Hast and Scott 2004). There are several references to faeries
influencing musical ability in Mac Aoidhs ethnography of Donegal fiddling. Mac Aoidh
details stories of how the faeries influenced the repertoires of Tarlach Mac Suibhne, Neillidh
Boyle, Bidi a Mhuc Ros, the Doherty family, and Michael and Jim Coleman (1994:55-67).
108
Without a teacher or mentor in the locality, Connie was mostly self-taught. Left to
his own devices, Connie devised his own method of tuning, a phenomenon Green
describes as a natural learning process common among self-taught popular
musicians (Green 2002, 2005a).34 Although Connies uncle did not know how to
play the fiddle, he was able to show Connie the conventional tuning based on
memories of his fathers fiddle playing. Connies aunt and uncle played a role in
his haphazard introduction to fiddle playing even though they were not
musicians. Connies experience highlights that family members who have little or
no musical skills can affect musical enculturation in unexpected ways a concept
I explore further in the next section.
During the initial stages of self-guided learning, Mick Daly also tuned his guitar in an
unconventional way (Daly, interview).
35
In this section, non-musicians refers to family members who do not sing, dance, or play
music.
109
This view most likely developed from Jamess family experiences; While his
parents are not musicians, James describes them as musically interested and
supportive. Jamess parents frequently accompanied James to traditional music
concerts and festivals (Duggan, interview), and he was reared in a household that
respected traditional music.
Parents do not have to be musicians, singers, or dancers to interact
musically with their children. Parents who actively listen to traditional music can
expose their children to Irish traditional music. In this way, live concerts,
commercial recordings, radio, and television can provide an alternative way for
families to musically interact with one another. Parents who are enthusiasts can
also discuss the music and relevant issues. While these experiences do not
compare to performing alongside family members, I suggest listening together is
a socio-musical interaction which influences musical development and
enculturation. Several interviewees suggest that listening to recordings was a
memorable family activity.37 These musical experiences were particularly
meaningful to interviewees who did not play music or sing with their parents.
Helen Gubbins relayed a strong memory of her family listening to De Dannan.
36
Raidi na Gaeltachta (RnaG) is an Irish-language radio station which broadcast Irish traditional
music on a regular basis.
37
James Duggan, Cormac De Frein, Helen Gubbins, Lisa OSullivan, and Geraldine OCallaghan
discussed memories of listening to Irish traditional music with various family members
(interviews).
111
Her parents were not musicians, but her father enjoyed listening to traditional
dance tunes, while her mother preferred traditional songs. Helen and her family
listened to De Dannans commercial recordings during car journeys because the
groups mix of tunes and songs satisfied each family members musical tastes and
interest. Helen remembers these experiences as important social moments in her
family life (Gubbins, interview). Additionally, Geraldine OCallaghan recalls a
memory of her uncle and his record collection. Geraldine did not learn repertoire
or instrumental technique from her uncle, but he was an encouraging traditional
music enthusiast.38 Geraldine states:
He was one of the most encouraging influences that I
had in terms of practicing my music. He just really
wanted me to be a musician and wanted to give me the
love of music that he had. He had a very small record
collection I remember he had this Sean McGuire
record and he was going out to milk the cows one day,
and he said When I come back in youre to have that
learnt. I was very young. I wasnt learning that long at
all. At the best of times youd do well to learn a Sean
McGuire tune by ear, but I learned the tune and this
crazy variation that he does at the very end of the tune.
And I was able to play for my uncle when he got back in
from milking and there was a great reward like, Oh
youve done a really great thing! That bit of
encouragement, having that at home was a big plus
(OCallaghan, interview).
In this example, because the uncle is absent while Geraldine independently learns
the tune aurally, it may seem like niece and uncle are not interacting musically.
However, the uncle provided a positive music environment where Geraldine had
access to commercial recordings, as well as providing encouragement and
motivation to learn in the first place. When Geraldine mastered his challenge, her
musical behavior was praised, encouraging her future participation. While no
teaching or demonstration takes place between uncle and niece, Geraldine recalls
this as an important moment during her musical development. Geraldines
participation in Irish traditional music was praised within the family setting. In
this environment, learning fiddle felt relevant to social life and musical
enculturation was encouraged.
While many of my interviewees acknowledge the significance of being
born into a musical family, several also emphasize that learners do not
38
While Geraldines uncle played a little harmonica and tin whistle, he played a motivational role
in Geraldines musical enculturation, rather than acting as a musical mentor or teacher.
112
Prior to the establishment of pipers clubs, pipers were likely to descend from
musical families, and piping traditions were mainly passed on within family
settings. Over the past sixty years, newly established clubs and institutions
provide learners of all backgrounds an opportunity to learn and develop into
traditional musicians.40 While the influence of family is still prevalent, a
multiplicity of learning experiences has benefited learners who do not come from
a family of musicians, singers, or dancers. Liz also suggests:
This is an example of dynasties used in reference to musical families who transmitted
traditional music over multiple generations.
40
In Chapter 3, I discuss learning experience in organizations such as Comhaltas Ceoltir
ireann and pipers clubs.
39
113
When music-making occurs within the family home, children can directly
and frequently listen, observe, and participate in Irish traditional music-making.
Children whose families are not active in music-making learn and experience
traditional music in other ways, including lessons, sessions, summer schools, and
by listening to commercial recordings. Parents who are non-musicians play an
important role in supporting their childrens participation in these educational and
musical activities. As Vallely states, In order for the music to be handed on, or
made available to children, the altruistic parents need to be spurred by some
ideological or educative motivations (2008:13). Helen Gubbins suggests that
learners need access to traditional music, either by interacting with family, peers,
or mentors or by attending tuition of some sort. Helen states:
You need access. If you dont have traditional music in
your family, there are ways around it. But for most
people, you need money, you need to go to classes, you
need an instrument... My family were interested, but it
wasnt like we had a lot of people coming over. My
cousins who were also learning came over, but there
wasnt anyone in my parents generation. There wasnt
somebody who already knew how to do it really well
and we could learn from. So, my parents paid for that,
and later on I paid for it myself (Gubbins, interview).
Attending classes and summer schools cost money, and in this way, there is an
additional economic benefit of coming from a musical family. Children from
musical families often inherit instruments and receive free musical advice.
Fortunately, for children born into family with little musical activity, there are
multiple ways to learn and engage with Irish traditional music.
A number of issues arise when we compare the relationships between
non-musicians and their children and relationships that occur between individuals
within musical families. For instance, when discussing the role that family
members play during musical enculturation, the possible tensions, power
relations, and expectations, particularly within families with a long tradition of
114
When high expectations are placed on young musicians, it is possible for their
creativity and personalized expression to be stifled. This type of socio-musical
pressure can originate from individuals or groups of people within or outside of
the family unit.
Of course, to a great extent, relationships within families are
individualistic and determined by numerous sets of criteria, including personality
traits and family histories. None of the five interviewees whose parents were
instrumentalists reported feeling an expectation that they needed to play in a
particular style or experienced family pressure to become a musician. Indeed, as
discussed above, Niall Vallely, Martin Hayes, and Mary Bergin were highly
influenced by their parents, but did not feel the need to copy their parents styles
directly. While family legacy may put pressure on learners to play in a particular
way (either consciously or subconsciously), this situation does not necessarily
stifle creativity. As discussed above, Martin Hayes was born into a family of East
Clare fiddle players, and while he was heavily influenced by musicians within his
family, Martin also feels his creativity was fostered through listening to a variety
of musicians and engaging in numerous music-making opportunities.
115
oversimplified.
In this section I explore the interviewees learning experiences in sessions,
and outline how these experiences affect enculturation. I propose that the
educational effectiveness of a session depends on a number of different factors,
including each individuals learning style, reasons for attending the session, and
the quality of the social relationships and interactions within the session. Some
sessions are more conducive to learning than others, depending on the
personalities of the musicians, and social, musical, acoustic, and spatial elements
of each session. OShea warns that many attempts to conceptualize group musicmaking leads to a tendency to idealise the process of making music together (as
if it always produced a transcendent experience) and to elide the experiences of
participants (as if everyone had the same experience) (2008:136). In order to
avoid overgeneralizations, I explore the learning process in traditional music
sessions by focusing on specific learning experiences, as described by my
interviewees. Focusing on each interviewees experiences and opinions also
presents a more complex view of the socio-musical phenomenon.
I begin by exploring the basic characteristics, a historical context, and the
different types of Irish traditional music sessions. Following this, I analyse how
traditional musicians acquire repertoire and techniques through listening,
observing, and conversing with other session participants. I also argue that the
session is a significant socio-musical event which fosters enculturation. Much of
the learning which takes place in sessions is informal and experiential in nature,
occurring through engagement and participation with others. Titon argues that
experiential learning leads to a more general understanding, not only of music,
but of people - of others and of oneself (1995:287-8). Finally, I discuss the
challenges of learning traditional music in the session context.
I reference a number of important sources of literature that informs my
approach, analysis, and interpretation. Ethnographies, specifically by Hamilton
(1978), Fairbairn (1993), and OShea (2005, 2008), are particularly useful in their
exploration of sessions as a musical, social, and cultural phenomenon. Although
the learning process is not at the centre of their investigations, these works
provide insight into how sessions affect the learning and transmission of Irish
traditional music. Education researchers, including McCarthy, Veblen, and
Waldron (McCarthy 1999a, Veblen 1991, 1996; Waldron 2006b, 2009a; Waldron
and Veblen 2009), have contributed an educational perspective of the session as a
117
Slides and polkas are common in many parts of Cork and Kerry, while mazurkas and highlands
are common in Donegal. Songs and slow airs are occasionally featured during sessions, but
this also depends on the particular session. Some sessions feature multiple songs, while others
can be almost entirely instrumental.
42
hAllmhurin also suggests that each session has its own internal logic, social code and sense
of time, all of which vary from one setting to the next (2008:188).
118
119
120
Cranitchs research also suggests pub sessions occurred in Sliabh Luachra before
the 1950s. He suggests pub sessions were an importance part of Pdraig
OKeeffes musical life:48
With regard to the pub, Lyons, where this music was
played, it was obviously an important place in Pdraigs
life, and, in a certain sense, can itself be considered to
have played a significant role by virtue of having
facilitated the very process of transmission of the
tradition (2006:210).
OConnor (2001:64) and Carolan (1997:39) use also the term sessions in
reference to the informal Irish traditional music events that Chief ONeill
organized in houses, halls, saloons, and the Irish Music Club in Chicago in 1901.
Because OConnor and Carolan only provide a basic account of these musical
events, it is difficult to assert with certainly the events are similar to
contemporary traditional music sessions. The accounts also do not clarify if the
47
Some interviewees also discussed the emergence of the session during their own lifetime in the
1950s and 1960s (Connie OConnell and Toms Canainn, interviews). Some scholars
emphasize that sessions became popular amongst Irish immigrants and musicians in the UK
and North America, suggesting sessions initially emerged outside Ireland (Kaul 2007:705;
OConnor 2001:115; O'Shea 2008:108; Williams 2010:17). For a discussion of the history of
the session see also (Fairbairn 1993; Foy 1999; Hamilton 1978, 1999; Hast and Scott 2004:14;
Kaul 2007:705, 2009; Kearns and Taylor 2003:30; Mac Aoidh 1994:34; O'Shea 2008:108,
2005:198-9; Vallely 2008:69; Waldron and Veblen 2009; Williams 2010).
48
Pdraig OKeeffe (1887 1963) was born near Castleisland, Co. Kerry. He is well-known for
his Sliabh Luachra style fiddle playing.
121
For more information on the Dance Hall Act and effects to cultural and musical life see
(Brennan 2004:10; Fairbairn 1993:126; Hast and Scott 2004; Hamilton 1996:151-3; Kaul
2007:705, 2009; Kearns and Taylor 2003:30; Mac Aoidh 1994:34; McNamara and Woods
1997; OConnor 2001:59; hAllmhurin 2008:131-2; O'Shea 2005: 84; Vallely 2004b:13;
Williams 2010).
50
Fleadhanna is plural for fleadh, the Irish word for festival. I discuss fleadhanna in Chapter 3.
122
argue that the purpose of a session can affects learning processes and behaviours
throughout the event. In this subsection, I explore the general features, functions,
and purposes of the various types of sessions. I also discuss how each session is a
slightly different learning environment with its own educational implications.
The most common type of session is the regularly occurring pub session.
Pub sessions typically occur once a week, although they also occur spontaneously
or on a fortnightly or monthly basis.51 Hamilton classifies pub sessions into two
categories: paid and unpaid sessions (1978:19). During my fieldwork in Cork
City, the vast majority of pub sessions I attended involved some sort of payment.
In Sin and the Corner House, the publicans typically pay two or three core
musicians to stabilize the session, and to provide music throughout the night. By
the 1980s paid sessions became the norm (OShea 2005:198-9), and OShea
suggests that in paid sessions, unpaid participants can feel marginalized or
tensions can arise between musicians (2005:130). While tensions are certainly
present in some paid sessions, according to my field observations, unpaid
musicians also commonly play and socialize alongside their paid counterparts
without social tension. Around the Cork City area, paid musicians generally (but
not always) tend to select and lead more tunes than their unpaid counterparts,
perhaps because they have a responsibility to lead the session. However, unpaid
musicians contribute to the music-making throughout the evening, commonly
participating equally, or sometimes more than, the paid musicians. As Kaul states,
non-paid musicians are still encouraged to lead a set of tunes at least some time
during an evening (2007:708).
House sessions are also common within traditional music circles. House
sessions are either planned in advance or occur spontaneously. In my experience,
many spontaneous house sessions occur after a pub session concludes and the
musicians and enthusiasts relocate someones house to continue playing and
socializing. While pub and house sessions share many similarities, house sessions
are often more informal and almost always unpaid affairs. Musicians do not have
to conform to publicans or punters expectations, so elongated conversations are
common in this context. House sessions also often occur for several hours, and it
51
In Cork City, the Corner House hosts a large session every first Friday of the month, which is
well-attended and popular amongst listeners and practitioners alike. Many musicians I
informally spoke with suggested that the first Friday session feels special since it only occurs
once a month (fieldnotes, 4 February 2011). See Appendix C for background information
about my fieldwork in pubs in Cork City.
123
is not uncommon to see musicians leave and re-enter the session circle many
times throughout the night in order to eat, drink, or chat amongst the other
musicians and attendees. In this way, house sessions are often informal, social
and musical events. Due to the level of informality, I suggest that house sessions
are educationally beneficial to learners, especially to individuals who may dislike
pub settings for personal, social, or musical reasons.
During Irish traditional music festivals and fleadhanna, spontaneous
sessions often breakout in pubs, on the streets, and other public places. Sessions
are also organized as part of festival programmes and often led by well-known
traditional musicians. Sessions are popular and attractive feature of most
traditional music festivals, including CCs fleadhanna. Hamilton suggests the
vast majority of musicians who attend Fleadhs do not enter these competitions,
and attend mainly to play in sessions with other musicians (1978:13). As
festival-based sessions usually involve large numbers of participants and specters,
musicians of varying ages and backgrounds commonly play in large circles or
concentric circles.52 These sessions are often unpaid, and participants take turn
selecting tunes to play together. While to the outsider this may seem like an
organic and democratic process, like most sessions, some musicians exert more
control over the music-making than others. This usually depends on social
dynamics, personalities, musical status, and playing abilities of the musicians
involved.
Sessions at festivals offer a significantly different learning experience
compared to weekly pub sessions. The regularity of the weekly pub session
allows learners to grow accustomed to the other participants repertoire and
particular social behaviours and conventions. In contrast, during festival sessions,
musicians can play together once and never interact again. Regular pub sessions
provide opportunities for musicians to form intimate and long-lasting social and
musical relationship. Sessions at festivals provide an opportunity to play, listen,
and socialize with traditional musicians from diverse localities, and learners are
exposed to a broad range of repertoire and styles. My interviewees suggest that
interacting with other musicians outside ones immediate social circle is
important during the learning process, and that these connections are often made
52
Old-time sessions also often take the form of concentric rings, with the core musicians, who
have played together, at the center and increasingly less experienced musicians in the outer
rings (Turino 2008:180). OShea describes a similar practice in Irish traditional music
sessions (O'Shea 2005:198).
124
during sessions at festivals. For example, John Reid learned many tunes while
playing in sessions during the Willie Clancy Summer School. John describes why
he feels his experiences in these sessions were important:
The thing about sessions is you have to move outside
your circle. You have to expose yourself playing with
different people You have to get out there. Get away
from your own sessions and hear different tunes and
different sessions (Reid, interview).
53
126
127
into his brain over the course of time (Foy 1999:26). Because weekly pub
sessions occur regularly, learners can repeatedly hear common repertoire and
grow accustomed to local and individual styles of playing. OShea argues that
repetitive listening is ideal for musicians in the process of learning a particular
repertoire and style (2008:129). Repetitive listening also fosters enculturation
since redundancy is the central mechanism for creating new social habits of
thought and action (Turino 2008:197). Williams also argues that during sessions
some of the best elements of an evenings music might reveal themselves only
through repeated attendance, participation, and careful listening (2010:14). For
participants who attend on a regular basis, the consistency of pub sessions
provides a unique opportunity for learning and enculturation.
Absorbing and acquiring new repertoire is one advantage of participating
in sessions on a regular basis. Many of my interviewees describe their experience
of learning new tunes in sessions.58 For instance, Niall Vallely believes that he
learned a considerable amount of new repertoire during his time in college when
he was playing sessions on a nightly basis. During various sessions in the Cork
City area, Niall heard and learned new tunes through repeated listening and
imitation. Niall also suggests that when playing many sessions a week, he
became bored of playing the same tunes over and over again, and this encouraged
him to learn new repertoire:
I rarely get to sessions [now] and my rate of learning
tunes has almost slowed down to zero and I think thats
connected. When youre not playing in the session, you
dont have an outlet for playing new tunes, so you learn
less. When I was in college and the years after in the
early 90s, I played sessions every single night in Cork.
For a period I was doing 7 or 8 sessions a week. So, you
end up learning a lot of stuff because you end up getting
bored playing the same tunes (Vallely, interview).
Mick Daly, Hammy Hamilton, Cormac De Frein, Michael OSullivan, Lisa OSullivan, Mary
Bergin, Geraldine OCallaghan, Niall Vallely, and Seamus Sands, all commented that they
learned many tunes informally and aurally by attending sessions (interviews).
128
an instrument yet. Hammy Hamilton describes this type of scenario, and believes
that he has acquired much of his repertoire by attending sessions. He states:
In a session, someone would play a tune, and Id say,
Wow, thats an interesting tune. Then I might hear it a
couple weeks later and eventually Id be walking down
the street one day and realize Im humming the tune.
And Id say, Thats the tune that so and so played in the
session. And once that process arrived, it resurfaced as
something I could hone; I always find it a simple
process (Hamilton, interview).
Geraldine refers to being able to pick up the bare bones of a tune after two
rounds meaning that experienced traditional musicians (with developed aural
and technical skills) are able to play the core features of a new or unfamiliar
melody on the second repeat of the tune.59 Many traditional musicians have and
use this ability to learn quickly during sessions. While instruments, such as the
flute and fiddle, are able to play quietly in a session, other instruments, including
the uilleann pipes and accordion, may be difficult or impossible to play quietly
59
In sessions and other performance contexts, Irish traditional musicians repeat dance tunes at
least once, and usually numerous times before concluding or progressing onto the next tune in
the set.
129
According to Connie, the ability to learn new repertoire also depends on the
particular session, including the number of musicians and types of personalities
involved. Attempting unknown tunes may be accepted in one session, while
distained in another.
Thirdly, traditional musicians can gain interest and an insight into new
tunes at a session, and continue the learning process in private at a later time.
Toms Canainn suggests that he does not necessary learn in sessions, but he
often hears new tunes he would like to learn. He gains an interest in a tune at a
session, then ultimately learns the tune through other sources, such as collections
or by asking a friend. Toms states that sessions:
are a good place to give you a wink about tunes. I
would not necessarily learn at them, unless you go to a
regular session and they keep doing the same thing, then
you kind of pick it up as you go But, in a session you
might say, God, that's a wonderful tune. Somebody
might say the name, and then you would go and chase it,
either in O'Neill's Collection or some other friend who
might know it ( Canainn, interview).
This can be an effective learning experience when the musicians know the names
of the tunes played at the session. Without this bit of information and some
traditional musicians are notorious for not knowing the names of tunes
researching tunes heard in sessions can be challenging.
It is in learners best interest to acquire commonly played tunes at their
local pub session, as this increases their ability to participate throughout the
event. For this, and other reasons, several interviewees learned new tunes in
sessions out of necessity, rather than for their own educational benefit or personal
130
Learning common tunes increases learners repertoire, but also helps novices to
feel a sense of commonality and belonging to the other musicians in the session.
When Cormac De Frein moved from Dublin to Cork, he learned a lot of new
repertoire by playing in sessions in Cork City. By frequently playing in sessions,
Cormac grew accustomed to tunes commonly played in Cork, which expanded
and broadened his repertoire (De Frein, interview).61
While session musicians of all ages and skill levels can listen, absorb, and
learn new repertoire, older or more experienced musicians can relearn or
rediscover tunes they once knew in the past, but have since forgotten. Seamus
Sands discusses this phenomenon:
What I find great about the likes of a session, if
someone comes and they start off some tunes that I
mightn't have played in literally fifteen or twenty
years I used to know an awful lot of tunes. I forgotten
so many of them and they'll come back, but someone
has to start them (Sands, interview).
With thousands of tunes in the Irish repertory, sessions act like a collective
memory bank. Tunes are learned, forgotten, and then remembered again through
interacting with other musicians in the session. Tunes are not entirely forgotten,
but can spring back to the memory through hearing another musician play it in a
session.
In addition to learning repertoire through repeated listening, absorption,
and imitation, learners can also observe new instrumental techniques in session
Cormac De Frein, Michael OSullivan, Seamus Sands, and Niall Vallely also discussed learning
tunes in sessions out of necessity (interviews). For instance, Michael states, Somebody
joining the session regularly have their own sets of tunes, and they might play a tune I don'
know. You would pick it up, but you're only doing it out of necessity rather than an actual
interest (O'Sullivan, interview).
61
Commonly played repertoire can differ by region and session. In the Cork and Kerry area,
polkas and slides are much more common in session compared to the rest of Ireland, for
instance. Musicians moving from Dublin to Cork, as in Cormacs case, can begin to absorb
local repertoire by frequently listening and participating in sessions.
60
131
132
(Cranitch, interview).
These observations helped Matt to produce a useful tutor, and deepened Matts
understanding of bowing and fiddle styles.
My interview data also indicates that participating in sessions exposes
traditional musicians to many different styles. For instance, James Duggan
attended many sessions during his college years, and found it useful to hear and
observe different stylistic approaches (interview). Over the years, James
developed his own style by attending classes, sessions, and by listening to
commercial recordings. James discusses how he developed his own fiddle style:
I might take something I hear in a session, you know, a
certain way a person is playing part of a tune. I might
take that away from it, rather than the actual tune If I
were to pick any tune that I play, it might be a basic
version from Ann [McAuliffe] with other bits in it
learned from recordings or learned from playing
sessions with people (Duggan, interview).
James learned tunes from his teacher, Ann McAuliffe, and then continued to learn
and develop subtleties and the stylistic nuances of fiddle playing through a
combination of listening to commercial recordings and to other musicians in
sessions. James developed into the fiddle player he is today by engaging in
multiple learning experiences, including attending sessions, classes, workshops,
festivals, and listening to commercial recordings.
In Lisas view, this sharing and learning not to be selfish are examples of two
social behaviours learners can grow accustomed to and develop in a session
context. This relates to McCanns argument that the session is a gift cycle. He
states:
The session conforms readily to the idea of a gift
cycle: In a gift cycle the gift is given without contract
or agreement about return. And yet it does return; a
circulation is set up and can be counted upon (Hyde
134
Sharing of music, ideas, and stories is inherent in sessions, and this leads to
significant implications for learning and enculturation processes.
Some interviewees believe that sessions provide a way of becoming
immersed within Irish traditional music and its culture. John Reid believes that
learners can soak up the music over an elongated period of time if they
consistently attend sessions. He states:
I believe if people come down to the session often
enough, it will soak into them. It's something you can't
learn tomorrow but, you have to soak yourself in it for a
while. People eventually do get it (Reid, interview).
The interview data also suggests that attending sessions has played a significant
role in many of my interviewees musical enculturation. Mick Daly, for instance,
primarily learned and became involved in Irish traditional music by hanging out
in sessions and generally being in a musical circle (Daly, interview). Mick
discusses the importance of sessions in the Phoenix bar in Cork, where he
absorbed many tunes:
You'd meet up with someone in the bar and they'd be
playing Irish tunes. And you just play along on guitar
and eventually the tunes get into your head (Daly,
interview).
begin to feel part of a musical circle. This sense of belonging is essential for
identity formation and enculturation. Within the interview data, there is a related
example of how sessions can foster musical enculturation in this regard;
Geraldine OCallaghan and a number of other students attended sessions in
Connells Pub with their teacher, Con Herbert. As a young fiddle player
Geraldine (and the other students) mostly listened, but also played when
prompted and encouraged by the older more experienced musicians. The
youngsters were eased into session playing - a process which educationalists refer
to as scaffolding. Eventually as a teenager, Geraldine and her peers gained the
confidence to establish and lead their own sessions.62 Geraldine considers this a
significant stage in her development as a traditional musician, as she explains:
We started going to sessions when we were about
eleven, maybe. Our teacher, Con [Herbert], used to take
us to Dan Connells Bar in Knocknagree, which is
closed and its an awful loss. But at that time it was a
hub of Sliabh Luachra music. Johnny OLeary used to
play thereWed go and spend most the time listening,
but the encouragement that we received from Johnny
and the other musicians playing there was immeasurable
really. It contributed to our confidence and ultimate
ability to play in public. For example, I remember at
some point in the night Con or Johnny would make it a
point of asking us to play, so we did get an opportunity
to play the material that we knew and were comfortable
with. That would have been my earliest memories of
going to sessions As we got older, wed start our own
sessions and that was a very significant thing really in
our lives - to have the confidence to sit down and start
our own session (OCallaghan, interview).
In Waldron and Veblens study of the informal learning practices of adults in sessions, one of
their interviewees also values session playing because it builds her confidence and selfesteem as a musician (2009:66).
136
Scholars also suggest that that information about repertoire is transmitted during
discussions in sessions. For instance, musicians often learn the names of tunes
during conversations in-between sets of tunes, as both Hamilton and
hAllmhurin indicate below:
Immediately after a set of tunes is finished, the players
generally relax, sip their drinks, light a cigarette, and
converse with each other. Conversation at this point
usually revolves around the last tune played (Hamilton
1978:39).
The interlude between tunes is an important opportunity
for conversation, and for learning names of tunes and
sources ( hAllmhurin 2008:188).
In-between sets, learners can gain basic information about a tune, and then are
able to research the tune at home by using written sources or commercial
recordings, for example.
During sessions, traditional musicians also commonly discuss other
musical topics, such as upcoming gigs, festivals, new albums, and non-musical
topics, such as sports, work, family, and life in general. Even discussions about
everyday life can cause participants to feel socially connected to the other session
musicians. Wenger, McDermott, and Snyder suggest that social exchanges can be
significant in terms of the overall vibrancy of a community of practice, although
the value of such exchanges is often initially overlooked. They state:
Many of the most valuable community activities are the
small, everyday interactions informal discussions to
solve problems, or one-one-on exchanges of
informationThe real value of these exchanges may
not be evident immediately (2002:60).
137
I suggest that many types of discussions in sessions can nurture social learning
and enculturation processes. Discussions in sessions are influential in terms of
social cohesion and they can be encouraging to newcomers who may begin to
feel socially accepted into the group.
Within sessions, there are subtle unwritten rules of musical and social
behaviours, often referred to as session etiquette, which can differ significantly
from session to session. Even musicians within the same session can have
different opinions what is socially and musically acceptable. OShea states this
causes sessions to be vulnerable to disruption because these 'rules' are not made
explicit (2008:130). A breach or disagreement about session etiquette often
results in confusion or tension within the session circle. Hamilton suggests that
behaviour is probably the most important factor in deciding whether a musician
will be accepted as a session member (1978:27). It is, therefore, in the learners
best interest to understand and negotiate the social norms and acceptable
behaviour as soon as possible. As Wenger suggests, a newcomers ability to
continue learning and participating within a community of practice depends on
being accepted into the group:
In order to be on an inbound trajectory, newcomers must
be granted enough legitimacy to be treated as potential
members. If a community rejected a newcomer for
some reason, that person would have a hard time
learning (1998:101).63
138
Although James did not acquire much repertoire at the session, he learned how to
conduct himself in session situations. In short, James grew accustomed to the
socio-musical behaviours of his musical culture (and locality). Additionally,
James became aware of the different ways musicians can interpret and vary tunes.
James was influenced by the musicians creativity and expression, which
encouraged and inspired him to learn different variations and interpret tunes for
himself (Duggan, interview). As another example from my interview data, Aoife
Granville suggests that she developed a general feel for traditional music while
listening and playing sessions. Similar to James, Aoife also indicates that she
learned more about the general musical style and session etiquette, rather than
learning many new tunes:
Learning in the session sometimes isn't just about the
tunes, its about etiquette, its about listening. Its where
I got a better feel for the music as opposed to learning
an awful lot of tunes I would learn tunes in sessions,
but I wouldn't retain them sometimes. Its more about
the whole music generally that you can learn in sessions
(Granville, interview).
139
Some novices can feel like, or actually be, outsiders and this can lead to anxieties,
insecurity, or outright rejection. When this happens the quality of the musical and
educational experiences deteriorates. OShea describes how musical outsiders can
be frozen out of a session:
it is a common enough experience that a musical
outsider from another country, another generation,
another county, another pub in the same town will not
be made welcome to participate in a session. If an
unwanted musician does join a session, they maybe
frozen out in various ways, as I have witnessed and (to
my shame) participated in (OShea 2006-7:8).
140
Although blunt feedback is often disheartening, when Hammy did not receive
negative attention, Hammy perceived this as a form of positive feedback. From
this feedback, Hammy slowly grew accustomed to which behaviours (both
musical and social) were acceptable in sessions. He learned from his mistakes,
which the other musicians directly pointed out to him. While Hammy
experienced criticisms from other musicians and such public criticisms can be
disheartening to learners these were important learning experiences.
My research suggests that many types of social interactions during
sessions can affect learning and enculturation processes. Positive relationships
formed in sessions, of course, can encourage learners. I have also suggested that
unpleasant exchanges can be important learning moments. Musical enculturation
is not about avoiding confrontation at all times or conforming blindly to others
expectations. It is about learning to negotiate social norms and meaning. Wenger
argues that novices learn how to negotiate cultural and social meaning through
prolonged discussions and interactions with other practitioners (Wenger 1998).
Attending sessions will and do not automatically foster enculturation. In order for
enculturation to occur novices must learn to negotiate social and musical issues in
order to be accepted into the session circle. Musical enculturation occurs when
learners experience a change to their musical and social selves.
Some Concerns
My interviewees have differing opinions about the usefulness and effectiveness
of traditional music sessions as learning environments. These diverse narratives
indicate that some learners consider participating in sessions a useful educational
experience, while others can find the experience musically and/or educationally
unfavorable. In this section, I explore a number of concerns about trying to
learn in sessions. I argue that sessions are not inherently effective or ineffective
learning environments; the effect sessions have on learning and enculturation
depends on a number of factors, including the individuals learning style. While
prolonged participation in sessions can foster enculturation, the quality of the
learning experience also depends on the quality and types of interactions which
occur during the session.
As emphasized above, sessions are not utopian musical events where all
141
Indeed, there are many examples of such romanticising with the literature. For
instance, Hast and Scott state that sessions seem to embody the heart of the
tradition, in which individuals are highly valued within a well-defined
community, and camaraderie, good humor, respect, love for the music, and love
for the land exist side by side (2004:15). McNamara and Woods also write that
the session draws on the emotions of those enfolded to achieve a kind of
timelessness. There are no limits on the number of people who can participate
and time itself ceases to be a factor (1997:106).64 While these descriptions of
sessions are not necessarily incorrect, they are overtly positive in nature, and
possibly misleading. Timelessness, passion, and camaraderie can occur in
sessions, but these are not characteristics of all or most Irish traditional music
sessions. During my fieldwork, I did experience a sense of timelessness on
occasion, particularly during special occasions, such as festivals, house, and
spontaneous sessions. During these moments, I lost track of the minutes and
hours most likely because I was so focused on the music-making and socializing,
a phenomenon that Csikszentmihalyi calls flow (1996, 2000). In comparison,
during regular weekly sessions in Sin and the Corner House, I experienced
timelessness more infrequently. While a sense of flow is possible, it is not
representative to suggest that time ceased to be a factor during these sessions.
On the contrary, Tuesday night sessions in Sin promptly end on time, either
exactly at midnight or a few minutes before, and it is not uncommon to observe
musicians checking their watches throughout the evening. Many musicians in the
Cork area are students or have regular day jobs in the mornings, and therefore,
time can certainly be a factor for many participants of weeknight sessions.
Additionally, contrary to McNamara and Woodss suggestion (1997:106),
64
As an additional example, Foy suggests that sessions are the wellspring of Irish music, its
beating heart. Its importance to the tradition must never be forgotten (Foy 1999:65).
142
there are limits to how many people are able to join the session. While there is
no strict or specific maximum number, particular socio-musical conventions and
the physical space available within a session can limit the number of participants.
Some traditional musicians believe that particularly instruments, such as the
guitar, bouzouki, and bodhrn, should be limited to one or two each per session
(Foy 1999:18). In Cork City, I have observed some guitar players hesitate to play
when another guitar player is already leading the session. Some Irish pubs are
also quite small and can only accommodate a certain number of musicians.
Overcrowded sessions can pose challenges to learners or cause tensions or
awkwardness amongst musicians. One significant issue is that not all musicians
may be able to find space to play within the session. Sin is a small, narrow pub
in Cork that is popular amongst tourists, locals, drinkers, and traditional
musicians alike. While Tuesday night sessions in Sin are typically relaxed and
quiet, the sessions on Friday are often very crowded with musicians and drinkers.
The pub is so narrow that only about ten musicians are able to squeeze around the
session table in a corner. I occasionally observed musicians arrive late to a
crowded session, and fail to secure a seat for the night. During these moments
which I have experienced myself musicians generally stand outside the session
circle to drink, listen, and socialize, or leave the pub in search of another venue.
Depending on the situation and size of the pub, there are limits to how many
musicians can join the session.
OShea rejects romantic notions of the session, and frequently discusses
problematic issues that can arise during Irish traditional music sessions, including
disagreements, misunderstandings of session etiquette, commodification, and the
marginalization of women and socio-cultural outsiders (OShea 2005, 2008). She
suggests that sessions may seem a delightfully egalitarian form of musical
participation. This is not necessarily the case, however, for the session operates
neither as a democracy nor as a meritocracy (OShea 2008:105). She also asserts
that musical status, including who exerts the most control over tempos and
repertoire, are determined by a musician's instrument, ability, reputation and
seniority are all important, as are a broad repertoire, Irish nationality, personality,
an old regional playing style and being male (2008:105). The musical status of
session musicians directly affects social interactions, power relations and social
norms. One such social norm, is that musical status plays a role in participants
physical location within (or outside of) the session circle. According to my field
143
observations, session leaders and other high status musicians typically sit in the
best seats available, in terms of comfort and ability to hear and project the
music. The leaders generally sit directly at the session table with their backs
towards the wall and face the other session musicians and bystanders in the pub.
It is often common for these musicians to sit down first, followed by their
acquaintances who sit in close proximity. Less experienced, unpaid, and/or
visiting musicians with a lower musical status often sit around the table facing the
session leaders, and have their backs to the audience. When sessions become
very crowded, concentric rings may form around the table, and in this case,
beginners and low status musicians sit furthest away from the session leaders
whom form a core around the table. Non-musicians and complete outsiders
generally remain outside of the session circle entirely. According to my
observations, when low status musicians knowingly or unknowingly sit in the
high status seats, a more experienced musician or leader may briefly and
politely ask to exchange places with the occupier. Such moments are often subtle
to the outside observer and may go unnoticed.
OSheas (2005, 2008) and Rapuanos (2005) research suggests that
women are often marginalized in traditional music sessions. OShea provides a
historical context and suggests that women continue to be marginalized in pub
sessions, because the pub is historically a male sphere. She also suggests that
sessions tend to be led by male musicians, and because males are employed as
session leaders, OShea asserts that this gives them a legitimacy and authority
that women musicians lack. Although a small minority of women have gained
employment at pub sessions, in general, women are not perceived as 'leadership
material' (2008:107). Rapuano describes sessions as a male-dominated activity,
and states that men still outnumber women by almost 10 to 1 (2005:38). In
contrast to OShea and Rapuanos research, during my fieldwork, particularly in
Sin and the Corner House in Cork City, I commonly observed women
employed to lead sessions. My fieldwork observations also suggest that males are
still in a majority, but that majority is much slighter than Rapuano suggests.65 In
Cork City, I have participated in many sessions that were male-dominated, but
others were women-dominated or well-balanced in terms of gender. This being
65
Perhaps Rapuanos research observations occurred in a locality where sessions are particularly
male-dominated. It is also possible that more women are participating during the years of my
observations (2009-2012) than during Rapuanos observations before 2005.
144
McLaughlin also states that there is a fairly even balance between males and
females who attend sessions (1992:69).
Within the literature and interview data, there is little consensus if
sessions are effective learning environments. While sessions are generally
acknowledged as a site for learning, several interviewees warned about the
challenges learners face while trying to learn during sessions. For instance, Conal
Grda states that he didnt learn much in sessions. I wouldn't have learned
new tunes. You can also learn it wrong in a session (interview). Some
interviewees believed that sessions are not conducive environments to develop
creativity and self-expression. Aoife Granville suggests that young musicians
who are fanatical about playing in sessions can place too much emphasis on
participation and neglect listening practices.66 Aoife proposes that this lack of
listening can negatively affect the development of creativity and self-expression:
I just don't think people listen enough before playing.
It's all about playing, playing, playing, and no one stops
to listen There's an attitude with teens - and with
other musicians as well - that they just have to keep
playing. But unless you stop and listen to someone else's
playing, you're never going to learn. I remember sitting
at sessions and just sitting back and listening to what
people are doing even if you knew the tune. There's
always something different someone will be doing with
it (Granville, interview).
Connie OConnell, Liz Doherty, and Conal Grda (interviews) similarly suggested that some
overzealous session musicians can prioritize playing over listening in session contexts.
145
Solo performance skills, such as the ability to ornament and vary tunes, are
immensely important within Irish traditional music culture. From OSheas
viewpoint, the conformity and group setting inherent in sessions does little to
nurture subtle more expressive elements of solo playing. In past research, I have
suggested that during sessions, flute players are able to breathe wherever and as
often as they like, because the tune is played by the other instrumentalists
(Cawley 2008). This does not encourage creative phrasing or breathing, and I
suggest that this skill is primarily learned during solo playing and practice.
For some novices, especially young children, pub sessions are perhaps not
ideal learning environments. Sommers Smith discusses several characteristics of
pub sessions which may interfere with the learning process:
often a loud, smoky, drink-filled experience during
which musicians play as fast as they can for as long as
they are able, to the delight --and sometimes the
indifference--of pub patrons. Sessions like this can be
exciting, but when the playing becomes competitive,
such gatherings subvert the social conventions of the
playing and sharing of a traditional music (2001:120-1).
The physical space of pub sessions creates issues for some learners and children.
There are also concerns about the competitive and intense nature of sessions.
Performance pressures can negatively impact novices who cannot technically
keep up with fast session tempos. Connie OConnell suggests that sessions can
put a significant amount of pressure on young traditional musicians:
I give out like hell - Kids playing at the fleadh now, they
go about two hundred miles per hour, and if you watch
the session, one or two kind of lead the throng. Theyre
picking all the tunes, and theyre kids, and the rest of
them have red faces! They dont know the tunes, they
are frustrated and all under pressure, and it shouldnt be
146
Connie suggests that while sessions can be venues for sharing and listening to
Irish traditional music, he also suggests that many young traditional musicians
can be overwhelmed by the social and musical pressures of the session. In my
interpretation, while some musicians consider these performance pressures
challenging, exciting, or inspiring, others can interpret them as frustrating,
intimidating, or demoralizing experiences. Martin Hayes suggests that the
pressures of playing in sessions can cause some learners to develop insecurities.
He states:
In some ways, I think that sessions have been quite bad
for the music. You know, they make people feel very
anxious about their playing: do I know enough tunes, is
this person sitting next to me a better player than me,
will I disgrace myself (in Kearns and Taylor
2003:157).
Some novices join sessions before they have developed the musical
techniques or adequate number of tunes necessary to participate alongside other
traditional musicians. Novices who join sessions before they are ready can
disturb the music-making as well as other session participants learning
experiences. This is a serious concern amongst many practitioners. During
sessions, when there is a diverse mix of highly skilled and novice musicians,
many challenges can arise for all participants. From another perspective,
however, when novices participate alongside more experienced traditional
musicians during sessions, they can learn and progress a great deal, both
musically and socially. Wenger suggests there are many reasons to shelter
newcomers from the intensity of actual practice, from the power struggles of full
participation, and possibly from the abuses of established members and there
are all sorts of reasons to shelter old-timers from the naivet of newcomers
(1998:275). Despite this Wenger asserts that in order for novices to become
experienced practitioners, they need to interact with an older generation of
practitioners. He states:
147
From this point of view, novice traditional musicians become enculturated and
learn how to negotiate their own developing identities by engaging with more
experienced musicians. If they only participate in beginners sessions, for
instance, they will not reap the benefits of interacting with an older generation of
practitioners.
Concluding Thoughts
Are sessions more appropriate learning environments for novice, intermediate, or
advanced musicians? Within the literature, some scholars address this question.
Some suggest that novice musicians, in particular, benefit significantly by
playing alongside more advanced session musicians. Sommers Smith suggests
that sessions can be extraordinary informal learning experiences for the novice
player, where tunes and their histories can be easily transmitted from one person
to another (2001:120). OShea also suggests that novice musicians have more to
gain compared to more experienced traditional musicians. OShea states that:
many of the highest-status musicians avoid playing in
public sessions; indeed, some musicians deplore the
'musical brawl' of the larger session It is the novice
and improving players who show most enthusiasm for
sessions and have more to gain from them. They can 'sit
it' and play along with more proficient leaders, acquiring
repertoire and style while concealing their deficiencies
(2008:132).
In contrast, Mac Aoidh proposes that novices often feel insecure in sessions:
Sessions will always serve as avenues for hearing tunes,
observing and talking about technique etc. It must be
said however, they are too intimidating for the very
beginner and for a developing player in the early stages
(1999:108-9).
This suggests that musicians who feel ready and confortable are likely to benefit
musically and educationally by participating in sessions. Fairbairn (1999:36)
148
suggests that musicians of all skill levels inherently learn during sessions.67
Fairbairn explains this is due to group interactions and the informality of the
performance event:
It is not only beginners who are learning in the sessions,
the process is intrinsic to the whole activity of group
playing. The fact that material is not formally prepared
beforehand, and the unpredictable nature of the event
itself combine to incorporate the learning function as an
essential feature of performance (1993:36).
The social and aural nature of sessions encourages assimilation of new repertoire,
stylistic approaches, and social behaviours. This applies to musicians of all skill
levels. Novice musicians have different educational needs than advanced
musicians. Their experience of a session, and what they take away from these
musical events, differs significantly to what a master musician may experience.
While we cannot assert that novice or advanced musicians benefit more from
sessions, it is useful to explore what each musician gets out of the learning
experience. Novices benefit from listening and absorbing new repertoire,
observing techniques, and playing alongside and socially interacting with more
experienced musicians. More advanced musicians, on the other hand, can listen
to the other session musicians interpretation of tunes and experiment with
varying tunes in new and interesting ways. More advanced musicians also gain
confidence and experience by participating as leaders within the musical
community.
Interviewees have differing viewpoints about what is actually learned in
sessions. Some felt that they acquired many new tunes by participating in
sessions, while others considered it challenging to learn repertoire during a
session. Some interviewees felt subtle elements of style were difficult to learn,
while others emphasized that listening in sessions broadened their stylistic
influences. While sessions provide opportunities to listen and observe live musicmaking, several interviewees have concerns about the effectiveness of the session
as an educational environment. Consequently, the effect sessions can have on
musical enculturation is complex. The interview data suggests that participating
in sessions is an effective and motivational learning experience for many
traditional musicians, but not for all musicians, or all of the time. I suggest that
67
Hamilton also suggests that musicians of varying skill levels learn during traditional music
sessions (1978:48).
149
From this perspective, learners in sessions can analyse where their performance is
not matching the more experienced players, or they may try and conceal their
deficiencies in order to fit in. Each reaction determines how a musician
experiences learning within the context of a traditional music session.
attendees can hear and see the music-making in action. As a young whistle player,
Mary Bergin was significantly influenced by seeing Willie Clancy in concert.
Mary describes the moment:
I remember hearing Willie Clancy at an Oireachtas
concert in Dublin, which was a major experience for me
because we never went to Dublin. We were out kind of
in the country at that stage; wed just go into the city
once a year. My father told me that I use to say to him,
Does that sound like Willie Clancy? So, I obviously
was influenced even though I only heard him once
(Bergin, interview).
This concert was particularly influential because Mary did not have a teacher, and
she states that there werent many whistle players. In the early years I wouldnt
have heard many. I just heard him [Willie Clancy] once (Bergin, interview).
Mary also comments that she may have unconsciously been influenced by Willie
Clancys whistle technique; both Mary and Willie Clancy play tin whistle with
their right hands on top (left hand on top is the norm). By seeing Willie Clancy in
concert, Mary was motivated to play her whistle, and according to her father, she
was inspired and enthusiastic to try and emulate his playing, even from a young
age.
I suggest that informal social interactions during concerts and gigs play a
significant role in enculturation. Lave and Wenger (1991) emphasize that
engaging socially with other practitioners is crucial in order to feel a part of a
community of practice. Traditional musicians can make important social
connections with other practitioners during concerts and gigs. Enthusiasts and
traditional musicians of all skill levels commonly attend concerts and gigs, and
converse with one another throughout the evening. Audience members can
discuss an array of different issues, including the performance itself, new albums,
upcoming traditional music events, or matters of everyday life.
Irish traditional music concerts and gigs take several forms, and therefore,
musical and social experiences at these events are diverse. Gigs and concerts can
be headlined by a variety of performing acts, including large ensembles (e.g. The
Chieftains, Dervish, etc.), smaller groups (e.g. Trir, Raw Bar Collective,
Teetotalers), or soloists.68 Presentational performances of Irish traditional music
68
Well-known traditional soloists often perform with guitar players or other accompanists. For
example, Martin Hayes and Dennis Cahill frequently play concerts together. Purely solo
concerts are relatively uncommon.
152
their commercial CDs at gigs, and when learners purchase these albums can
continue to listen and learn at home. In this way, the performers influence can
last long after a concert concludes. James Duggan purchased CDs after hearing
traditional musicians in concert, and he discusses how he eagerly awaited
traditional music concerts at a theatre in his hometown of Listowel:
There was a theatre in Listowel and about once a
month they would have a trad gig so, I saw people like
Frankie Gavin, John Carty, Martin Hayes, so I would
have been influenced by each of them, kind of as they
came. So after I heard John Carty, I'd get a John Carty
CD so I kind of went through different phases
(Duggan, interview).
Concluding Thoughts
In this chapter, I have proposed that Irish traditional musicians experienced
musical enculturation by interacting socially and musically with peers and
mentors in various contexts. Much of the discussion revealed that informal and
unconscious learning plays a significant role in the enculturation of Irish
traditional musicians. I argued that family members affect learning and
enculturation processes in multifaceted ways. Only five of my twenty
69
(Martin Hayes, Geraldine OCallaghan, Lisa OSullivan, and Michael OSullivan, interviews).
154
155
Chapter 3
Learning Experiences in Organized Settings
Between the 1930s and 1950s, Irish traditional music was at a low point in
popularity, practice, and transmission.1 Many organizations and events were
established in response with the aim to promote and transmit Irish traditional
music. Such institutions provided new learning contexts, and traditional
musicians gained new platforms on which to perform and interact with other
practitioners. In discussing situated learning, McDermott describes the
importance of organizations and community events:
learning is not in heads, but in the relations between
people. Learning is in the conditions that brings people
together and organize a point of contact that allows for
particular pieces of information to take on relevance;
without the points of contact, without the system of
relevancies, there is no learning (1993:292).
For literature on the decline and revival of Irish traditional music see (Brennan 2004; Fairbairn
1993; Hamilton 1996, 1999b; Hast and Scott 2004; Kaul 2009; Kearns and Taylor 2003;
McNamee 1992; Moloney 1999; O'Flynn 2009; hAllmhurin 2008; OShea 2005; Vallely
1999, 2004b, 2008; Williams 2010). This is also discussed in more detail throughout this
chapter.
156
157
From this point of view, institutions do not perpetuate or transmit Irish traditional
music. Rather, it is the musicians and enthusiasts within the organization (and
these practitioners music-making and discourse) who contribute to the strength
of the musical community. Institutions are only influential and educationally
effective when practitioners within the community find musical, cultural, or
social meaning within the organizations actions. When organizations activities
158
directly relate to the aims of the community, practitioners are more likely to
identify or participate within the institution. Wenger, McDermott, and Snyder
argue that:
Participation can certainly be encouraged, of course, but
the kind of personal investment that makes for a vibrant
community is not something that can be invented or
forced (2002:36).
of most peoples life experience (1988:136), and within Irish traditional music,
this is particularly true. Many traditional music scholars acknowledge that
traditional musicians most commonly develop their skills outside formal
schooling.4 Mac Aoidh, for example, states:
Despite being a recognized portion of the curriculum,
traditional music in primary schools must be said to be a
hit and miss affair... those in secondary school music
classes and seeking to develop their interest in
traditional music generally have obtained their training
outside the formal educational structure (1999:107-8).
Studies focusing on schooling and teaching also suggest that Irish traditional
music is largely transmitted outside schools (McCarthy 1999a, 1999b; Veblen
1991). McCarthy states:
In my historical study of Irish music education in a
cultural context,5 I found that the strength of music
education in Ireland has traditionally been located
outside the formal education system (1999b:41).
While traditional music does play an important role in the curricula of some
schools, this is not consistent across schools throughout Ireland.
There are several historical reasons for this lack of traditional music in
schools. During much of Irelands colonial history, Irish culture, including dance,
language, poetry, music, and song, was repressed during English rule.6 Irish
cultural practices were not tolerated, let alone taught in schools. Although it is
beyond the scope of this study to detail the history of music education within the
Irish school system (see McCarthy 1990, 1999), a brief historical context is
useful here. Kearns and Taylor state:
See (Burgess 1999; Comhaltas 2004:23; Hamilton 1996; Kearns and Taylor 2003; Mac Aoidh
1999; McCarthy 1999a, 1999b; OFlynn 2009; Vallely 2004b; Veblen 1991).
5
McCarthy is referring to her PhD thesis (McCarthy 1990).
6
hAllmhurin (2008:29-35) and Hast and Scott (2004:23) provide a good overview of this era
of Irish traditional music history.
160
With the exception of Irish language and sean-ns songs from the tradition, after
1922, the new Irish government had little effect on the transmission of Irish
traditional music, as the states involvement with Irish traditional music was
almost nonexistent (Hamilton 1996:298). Although traditional music is gaining
appreciation and presence within many Irish schools, it is not yet common or
experienced by all (or most) Irish schoolchildren. Vallely states:
...the music in schools is still generally poor (but in
many cases excellent, and is sometimes quite
inspirational). The state examinations provide for it in
the curriculum, but amazingly are not backed up by
teaching it (2004b:7).
The Comhaltas report (2004), Mac Aoidh (1999), Vallely (2004b) suggest that
depending on the interest of teachers and principals, traditional music education
may be exceptional in some schools, but overall, inconsistencies remain.
As outlined later in this chapter, each year thousands of pupils learn to
play traditional instruments during extra-curricular classes and summer schools.
Due to the influence and efficacy of such institutions, teaching Irish traditional
music in school may not seem entirely necessary, because the music is being
successfully transmitted without formal schooling. Indeed, some caution that the
musical culture may become inflexible and formal if it were transmitted primarily
through the school system. Mac Aoidh, for example, characterizes the formal
education system as too rigid, and emphasizes the potential of informal methods
of transmission:
I do not see any change towards greater support for
traditional music in the formal system of education. It is
a large structure characterised by its being rigid,
resistant to change and a writer of its own agenda of
which it is convinced. The informal educational system
shows much greater signs of promise (1999:110).
However, Vallely is not anxious about this actually happening, as he also refers to formal
education only an additional structure for the music anyway (2004b:36).
162
OCallaghan (b. 1982), Lisa OSullivan (b. 1975), and Michael OSullivan (b.
1978), experienced traditional music on multiple occasions during the average
school week. These interviewees learned how to play tin whistle and traditional
music played a strong role in their schools culture.
The interviewees narratives also differ in terms of the quality of their
musical experiences. While some interviewees discussed positive musical
experiences, others had negative associations and memories of music in school.
For instance, in Mary Bergins experience, although her school provided a basic
introduction to the tin whistle, this did not benefit her in any significant way.
Mary (b. 1948) was quite bored during these classes, since she had already
learned many whistle tunes on her own at home. Mary states:
There was music one year in the primary school, but I
was well ahead of them I was playing from that early
age I remember being able to play the tunes because
she had me as an example in front of the class.
Traditional music wasnt taught in schools really, or
even classical music. There wasnt much emphasis on
music (Bergin, interview).
School experiences did little to enhance Marys musicality.8 Mary also reveals
that she often played her whistle on the school bus, but a couple of students
teased her for playing old-fashioned music (Bergin, interview). During Marys
childhood in the 1950s, the traditional music revival was in its infancy, and music
was not nurtured within most national schools. Marys enculturation occurred
mostly at home and during informal music-making in house, pub, and pipers
club sessions around Dublin.
Growing up in the 1990s, James Duggan also received a basic
introduction to tin whistle, but did not learn much traditional music repertoire,
style, or aspects of the culture. James describes his experience in school:
In around fifth class, about ten I suppose, I did whistle
for about a year It was just stuff like Frre Jacques
and Happy Birthday. The teacher wasn't a music teacher
as such, but she was able to write the staff and play a bit
on the whistle. I don't think she could play jigs or reels
or anything like that on the whistle. She never did them
anyway (Duggan, interview).
It must be noted that Mary Bergin is perhaps one of the most accomplished tin whistle players of
her generation. For this reason, Marys experiences and perception of the music in her school
most likely differs significantly than that of her classmates.
163
164
All three acknowledge that their musical education and experience in primary
school was quite exceptional, and recognize the majority of school children are
not afforded the same opportunities. Michael OSullivan states, It took me a long
time to learn how luckily we were that we had it [traditional music] in school
because not a lot of people get a chance to learn it (O'Sullivan, interview).
Freemount N.S. has a rich musical tradition, but this is primarily due to
the influence of one enthusiastic teacher, not because of national policies,
initiatives, or a well-developed and implemented curriculum. As Geraldine tells,
music was not a mandatory subject or part of the curriculum:
Every child had the opportunity to learn, some loved it,
some didnt. Just from my memory, the kids that didnt
participate during the school day would have been
maybe doing homework or something. They certainly
werent forced into doing it It wasnt graded and it
wasnt mandatory. It was very natural and inclusive and
just really warm kind of environment (OCallaghan,
interview).
culture of the North Cork area. Con was a leader in the local music community,
so his influence was not confined to the school setting. Cons students benefited
from interacting with him as an authentic and experienced practitioner of Irish
traditional music.
Wenger explains why teachers like Con can affect learners so significantly
during their introduction (or enculturation) into a new community:
teachers, parents, and other educators constitute
learning resources, not only through their pedagogical
or institutional roles, but also (and perhaps primarily)
through their own membership in relevant communities
of practice. In other words, it is not so much by the
specific content of their pedagogy as by their status as
members teachers need to represent their
communities of practice in educational settings. This
type of lived authenticity brings into the subject matter
the concerns, sense of purpose, identification, and
emotion of participation (Wenger 1998:276).
Lisa OSullivan and Geraldine OCallaghans descriptions of the informal music-making in their
school are good examples of this.
166
traditional music or its culture. Cormac suggests that other traditional musicians
in his peer group were much more influential than his teachers in terms of his
musical development and enculturation:
When I went to secondary school there was a load of
music. It was an incredible school for musicians. I
wasnt playing trad at the time, but there were people in
the class that were inspiring musicians. And there was
one flute player, Eamon DeBarra, and I heard him
playing the flute and I said, Man, I have to learn the
flute! Thats how I kind of got into trad (De Frein,
interview).
167
traditional music society. Matt Cranitch discusses his experience playing and
socializing with members of An Chuallacht, UCCs Irish language society:
I went to the University in Cork and studied electronic
engineering, but in the back of my head I always knew
that I would study music as well. So some years later I
did a second stint, and did a music degree Even
when I was studying electronic engineering, I tended to
meet up with people who were musicians. I remember
joining An Chuallacht, which was the Irish language
society. They had social events like sessions and cils
and so on. So I guess music was an important part of my
life at the time (Cranitch, interview).
Toms recognizes that the formal study of Irish traditional music is not the norm
amongst traditional musicians. Because of his experience at UCC, Toms has a
positive attitude towards the academic study of traditional music, and asserts that
studying has expanded his understanding of the music and its culture.
Additionally, Matt Cranitch describes how he developed an understanding of
Sliabh Luachra fiddle playing:
At UCC, I embarked on a Masters, and my subject was
on Mick Duggan a pupil of Pdriag OKeefes... I
learned a huge amount from him and Johnny OLeary.
On one of my early field recordings with Duggan, I
recorded various settings of tunes and I transcribed
some of those Duggan used to do a fair bit of offbeat
droning and double stopping with the bow, and I
transcribed all of that stuff meticulouslyAnd when all
that was done - and it took ages to do this thing - I
looked at it, I said Right, I know how Sliabh Luachra
music works. I now know what it is. And from that day
on, I knew that to get inside the stylistic nuances of
fiddle playing, one had to look beyond the notes; You
have to look at the bowing (Cranitch, interview).
168
Extra-Curricular Tuition
The majority of my interviewees learned to play their instruments outside of
school hours by enrolling in extra-curricular tuition at Comhaltas branches or
pipers clubs.12 Extra-curricular tuition is a significant learning context within the
Irish traditional music community. To musicians who enroll in classes or lessons,
traditional music teachers are often highly influential mentors who introduce
learners to Irish traditional music and its culture. In this section, I explore how
extra-curricular tuition provided by organizations, clubs, and independent
teachers plays a significant role in learning and enculturation processes. Several
interviewees described their music teachers as the most significant influences in
terms of their musical development.13 For instance, James Duggan describes his
teachers, Nicky and Ann McAuliffe, as his most direct influences and states,
Most of my formal learning would have been with them. Most of my technique
and approach would have been through them (Duggan, interview).
On a basic level, tuition provides learners with direct interaction with
more experienced practitioners of Irish traditional music. Pupils learn repertoire,
technique, and new social behaviours through direct teaching and demonstration.
Irish traditional music tuition typically takes place outside of school hours in
(Cormac De Frein, Liz Doherty, James Duggan, Helen Gubbins, Ciara N Fhearghail, Geraldine
OCallaghan, Conal Grda, Lisa OSullivan, Michael OSullivan, Seamus Sands, and Niall
Vallely interviews).
13
(Cormac De Frein, Liz Doherty, James Duggan, Helen Gubbins, Ciara Ni Fhearghail, Geraldine
OCallaghan, Conal Grda, and Niall Vallely interviews).
12
169
community centres, schools, halls, and private homes, and involves a spectrum of
informal, non-formal, and sometimes formal learning experiences. The teachers
approach and the types of relationships within classes considerably affect the
learners experience. Because tuition takes many forms, there are numerous
implications to consider, and differing effects to the enculturation process.
The teaching of Irish traditional music has a long and rich history. For
generations instrumental teaching has occurred informally within the family
home, and between pupils and masters of dancing, piping, and fiddle playing.
McCarthy describes the common 19th century practice of receiving tuition from
piping and fiddle masters:
Master teachers were identified in the immediate
community or in a neighbouring community and pupils
were sent to them for lessons. In other cases, these
masters were itinerant and travelled around to the pupils'
houses. When the master and pupil met for a lesson, the
master would often inscribe a tune in the pupil's book to
help him recall it after the lesson in the master's absence
(1999:101).
This mode of tuition has continued into the 20th and 21st centuries. Pdraig
OKeeffe, for instance, traveled around and taught fiddle to pupils in the Sliabh
Luachra area (Cranitch 2006:2). Several scholars emphasize that historically
teachers have played a significant role in the transmission of Irish traditional
music. Veblen suggests that the influence of teachers on transmission has
remained constant over time. The teacher continues to be a community resource,
tradition bearer and facilitator (1991:xii). In certain localities, teachers were vital
to the survival and transmission of Irish traditional music. Cranitch highlights
how a lineage of Sliabh Luachra fiddle players passed on the music from one
generation to the next. He points out that Corney Drew learned from the blind
itinerant fiddle player Thomas OGrady, Drew in turn teaches Cal OCallaghan,
and OCallaghan teaches his nephew, Pdraig OKeeffe (Cranitch 2006:135).
While independent teachers have a rich history of transmitting Irish
traditional music, tuition provided by institutions is a relatively new learning
context which became common during and after the 1970s.14 Hammy Hamilton
describes the lack of traditional music classes available in the early 1970s, and
contrasts this to how learners now commonly learn from teachers:
14
This is an approximation. In some localities organizations may have provided traditional music
tuition prior to the 1970s or much more recently.
170
Mary Bergin also suggests that years ago, there really werent formal classes as
such. It was passed on though exposure. That was how most people learned
(Bergin, interview). This is reflected with my interview data; the interviewees
born before or during the 1960s are mostly self-taught and learned alongside their
peers during informal music-making.15 All of the interviewees born after 1970,
and some born in the 1960s, attended classes at CC branches or pipers clubs.16
Learning experiences in organizations and structured settings now play a more
central role in musical enculturation than in the past.
Below I introduce common characteristics of group and individual tuition.
Following this, I explore the role of CC and pipers clubs by analysing the
interviewees learning experiences. The focus of the discussion remains on the
learning process, rather than the organizations structure, policies, or history.
Lastly, I discuss the social nature of tuition and explore how attending traditional
music tuition can influence and nurture the enculturation process.
Individual and Group Tuition
Generally coinciding with the school calendar, Irish traditional music
organizations commonly provide individual and group tuition approximately
from September to May. This structure provides an opportunity for learners to
consistently engage with and practice Irish traditional music throughout the year.
A few interviewees suggest that this consistency and prolonged engagement
aided their musical enculturation.17 Helen Gubbins discusses how classes at her
local Comhaltas branch provided consistency through the learning process:
I always valued the element of consistency In terms
of traditional music, I had one teacher from when I was
five until I was eighteen. She taught me every Saturday
morning, she still teaches ten years later in the same
(Mary Bergin, Mick Daly, Hammy Hamilton, Martin Hayes, Toms Canainn, Connie
OConnell, interviews).
16
Some were only enrolled briefly, while others had more substantial experiences in these
settings.
17
(Liz Doherty, Helen Gubbins, Michael OSullivan, interviews).
15
171
Helen valued the structure of classes throughout the school year, and looked
forward to festivals and competitions during the summer months. Helen attended
her local Comhaltas branch in Limerick from the late 1980s until approximately
2001. Because her musical participation was prolonged and consistent, Irish
traditional music gradually became part of her social life. When this occurs,
learners are more likely to begin identifying themselves as traditional musicians.
Although more organized and structured than the learning experiences
discusses in Chapter 2, Irish traditional music tuition is characteristically informal
and non-formal in nature. In both group and individual tuition settings, pupils
often learn by watching, listening, and imitating the teacher, and classes often
lack formal elements, such as assessments, examinations, and direct verbal or
written instructions. Because teachers explicitly guide students and direct
learning activities, however, tuition provides purposeful and structured learning
processes. With both informal and formal characteristics, learning processes that
occur during traditional music classes are often non-formal - that is, positioned
somewhere in the middle of the informal/formal spectrum. During his late
childhood, James Duggan attended group instrumental classes and describes the
tuition as structured in some ways and unstructured in others:
It was structured in the sense that I went to Ann every
Wednesday at 3PM, and I'd go to Nicky every Thursday
from 8-9PM, and it was October to Christmas, after
Christmas to March. The classes weren't very structured
in the sense that Ann might decide on the spot what she
was going to teach you. She would just have the tune in
her head and would write it out from memory while
you're sitting there She might play the tune and say,
Do you know this? and if you didn't, she would write it
out and record it for you (Duggan, interview).
While Jamess classes were structured in terms of set times and location, his
teachers taught non-formally and informally. In many traditional music classes,
the curriculum is not predetermined by committee members of an organization,
but by the teacher who chooses repertoire based on their preferences and tunes
that they consider appropriate. In many instances, such as Jamess experience
above, the teacher intuitively decides on repertoire to teach during their classes.
Other traditional music teachers have a more systematic way of introducing
172
simple tunes before progressing to more advanced tunes which require technical
proficiency on an instrument.
Traditional music teachers do not usually teach technique and style
separate from repertoire, which is a common practice within Western classical
music. Separate exercises, etudes, and scales, for instance, are uncommon in
traditional music classes. Keegan suggests, breathing exercises have not been
adopted by performers to any great extent yet (1992:35).18 Expressive elements
of traditional music-making, such as bowing techniques and ornamentations, are
demonstrated either explicitly of implicitly during the teaching of repertoire.
Seamus Sands suggests that during his group fiddle classes, his teacher focused
more on teaching repertoire, and did not teach even basic techniques, such as how
to hold the bow. Seamus suggests elements of technique and style came to him
informally over the years:
In the classes that I had with my brothers and sisters...
that was more about learning the tunes. Certainly it
would have taught me the basics, like what a roll was,
but that's where it would have stopped. There was
nothing about how to hold the bow or how to do bow
triplets or slides or whatever. So they would have just
come to me over the years. I wouldn't have been
formally trained in those types of things (Sands,
interview).
Seamus primarily and gradually developed his fiddle style by playing and
listening to Irish traditional music in diverse contexts, such as in houses, sessions,
festivals, concerts, and on commercial and non-commercial recordings. I argue
that while many learners are introduced to instrumental traditional music during
structured tuition, traditional musicians commonly develop their technical
abilities and creative expression through a combination of listening and playing
traditional music in a variety of contexts.
Group and individual tuition provides different learning experiences.
Within the Irish traditional music and music education literature, the merits of
group tuition and individual instruction are often compared and contrasted. Some
suggest that individual instruction is more educationally beneficial, since subtle
elements of style and self-expression are challenging to transmit in group settings
18
During my fieldwork at the Douglas Comhaltas branch, I did observe warm-up breathing
exercise during a flute class (fieldnotes, 9 March 2011). However, it was the only time I
observed breathing exercises demonstrated in a traditional flute class, workshop, or lesson.
173
Additionally, Mac Aoidh describes the one-on-one music lesson as the most
tested format to teach instrumental traditional music (1999:109). Some music
education scholars also suggest that individual expression is challenging to
nurture in group music classes. In an early childhood curriculum, several scholars
compare music learning and language learning in group settings:
imagine the outcome in language learning if children
were asked to speak only in groups, repeating what the
teacher said. They would learn only to imitate what
others around them are saying and so could not give
meaning to what they said (Valerio et al 1998:4).
They suggest that while group singing and rote learning is widespread in schools
around the world, it does little to stimulate personal musical expression. From a
traditional music perspective, when learners only learn in group settings, they
may have difficulties trying to interpret repertoire for themselves.
Of my interviewees who received instrumental tuition, most experienced
both individual and group classes during the learning process. The interview data
reveals significant differences in the experience of learning in individual, rather
than group tuition. Several interviewees discussed their learning experiences
large, mixed instrument, group classes.19 Helen Gubbins, for instance, learned tin
whistle and accordion alongside approximately thirty other students of varying
traditional instruments, such as fiddle, concertina, and flute. While Helen learned
basic technique and repertoire, she suggests that group lessons did not nurture the
development of her accordion technique. She feels that her underdeveloped
technique made it difficult for her to perform in solo competitions confidently.
Helen describes the disadvantage of not having classes with an accordion teacher:
I didnt have a solo teacher, and my performance skills
werent honed. I didnt have access to an accordion
19
(Helen Gubbins, Geraldine OCallaghan, Lisa OSullivan, Michael OSullivan, Liz Doherty,
James Duggan, interviews).
174
Helen eventually took individual lessons with Martin Connolly, and describes
these lessons as more systematized and organized (Gubbins, interview). Martin
often taught tunes in order to specifically address Helens technical deficiencies.
The individual attention she received from Martin was not possible in the large,
mixed instrument group setting. While traditional music teachers value and often
provide learners with individual attention in group tuition settings (Veblen
1991:69), learners received much more focused and prolonged individual
attention during one-on-one lessons.
However, group tuition provides a distinct set of educational and social
advantages. Firstly, for many families, group tuition offers affordable music
instruction. Helen Gubbins, the youngest of six children, discusses attending
group classes as a family:
There were so many people there that it was very
affordable for us. I think it was like one or two pounds
each per student, and there was always four of us going.
She never really charged us more than five pounds for
the whole family, so my parents could afford that, so we
could always go to it (Gubbins, interview).
Liz Doherty learned in mixed instrument group classes, and enjoyed learning
from her peers and teacher, Dinny McLaughlin. Liz discusses the advantages of
20
175
Liz also suggests that a private lesson may be a bit unnecessary, especially for
novices (Doherty, interview).
Group tuition provides a different learning and social experience than
individual tuition, and therefore, learners who learn in both settings enjoy
multiple and complementary educational advantages. During individual tuition,
learners receive individual attention and detailed advice from experienced
musicians, which aids the development of technique, style, and expression. Many
learners find the social aspect of group tuition motivational, and at the very initial
stages of the learning process, a weekly one-to-one lesson is perhaps not
necessary. Intermediate musicians, perhaps, benefit more from individual lessons,
since subtle aspects of style, expression, and instrumental techniques are
generally covered in this context. It is not entirely useful to debate which setting
group or individual is more educationally sound; rather, it is more valuable to
examine which type of tuition is developmentally appropriate and suitable to each
learners needs.
These publications are available on CCs website, www.comhaltas.ie, which also provides free
online resources and information about CCs history, aims, and current events.
176
This is discussed at length elsewhere. See (Breathnach 1986,1996; Fleming 2000, 2004;
Hamilton 1996; Henry 1989; Kaul 2009; Kearns and Taylor 2003:45; Keegan 1992; McCarthy
1999; Mac Aoidh 1994; O'Connor 2001; O'Flynn 2009; hAllmhurin 1998; Murch
1987; OShea 2005, 2008; Vallely 1999, 2004b, 2008; Williams 2010).
177
I argue that instrumental classes which are rooted in a social and local context
23
See (Breathnach 1986, 1996; Fleming 2000, 2004; Hamilton 1996; Henry 1989; Kearns and
Taylor 2003; Keegan 1992; Mac Aoidh 1994; OShea 2005, 2008; Vallely 2004b, 2008).
178
179
Liz Doherty also experienced a somewhat formal and structured education at her
local CC. Her teacher, Dinny McLaughlin, taught using notation and was
meticulous about slurring and bowing techniques. Liz states:
We all had our notebooks and we wrote down the tunes,
and because Dinny was a fiddle player he was really
into that we had good bowing and that we all had the
same bowing... Hed show us where to put a slur and we
all would have bowed it. And you know what? To this
day I can play any of those tunes exactly the way Dinny
taught us to. But yeah, [we learned] nothing by ear
(Doherty, interview).
Pipers Clubs
The many pipers clubs established in Ireland and around the world are influential
25
Lisa and Michael OSullivan also attended classes and other activities at this CC branch
(interviews).
181
organizations that promote and teach uilleann piping. They also promote Irish
traditional music in general through various activities, including classes, sessions,
archives, recitals, summer schools, publications, and festivals. Many pipers clubs
also host tin whistle and other traditional instrument classes. Some clubs have
relatively long histories, such as the Cork Pipers Club, established in 1898
(Mitchell 1999:90; hAllmhurin 2008:116-7), and The Dublin Pipers Club,
established in 1900 (OConnor 1999:110). Other pipers clubs were established
during the revival of the 1950s and 60s in response to a decline in piping.26 As
mentioned in Chapter 2, prior to the establishment of pipers clubs, the piping
tradition was primarily transmitted within piping families and through itinerant
pipers. Pipers clubs currently provide learning opportunities to a wider
population of learners.
Several of my interviewees learned their instruments in classes and
activities organized by pipers clubs. Niall Vallely learned tin whistle in his
parents classes at the Armagh Pipers Club, and Niall suggests that the clubs
classes and informal activities were highly memorable and motivational (Vallely,
interview). Toms Canainn and Conal Grda learned at the Cork Pipers
Club under the tutelage and mentorship of Mchel Rabhaigh. Conal describes
Mchel as the first and most significant musical influence. Conal describes these
experiences:
I started going to the pipers club around ten I learned
a lot of tunes there. Michel was always meticulous
about the ornamentations. You got it right from the start,
you know? I'd say, probably a good portion of the tunes
I still know, are the ones I learnt back then ( Grda,
interview).
Toms Canainns experience at the Cork Pipers Club was more informal and
social in nature. Toms states that he was not exactly a student at the club, but
often received informal guidance and advice from Mchel Rabhaigh during
informal sessions at the pipers club ( Canainn, interview). Toms writes about
these experiences in his memoir:
Mchel ran the Pipers' Club in Dn Laoi on the North
Mall. As far as I can remember, it met there on a
Saturday night and began with a class for his young
piping students. After an hour or so of that, there would
26
Two examples are the Armagh Pipers Club, established in 1966 (Vallely 1999:9) and Na
Pobair Uilleann founded in 1968 (Vallely 1999:299; Williams 2010:134).
182
Compared with CC, Pipers clubs often place less of an emphasis on, or
openly discourage music competitions. The national organization of pipers, Na
Pobair Uilleann, plays a role organizing the Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy.27
The school and Na Pobair Uilleann both emphasize the importance of noncompetitive performance and recitals (Kearns and Taylor 2003:51-2). Niall
Vallely discusses the Armagh Pipers Club focus on non-competitive musicmaking:
They make a big effort to not get involved in the
competition thing and to develop a sort of a social thing
for the kids. So, I suppose it is more like a club than a
just a school. There are other things that happen other
than learning tunes in a schoolroom. And I think that
makes a big difference (Vallely, interview).
Niall also suggests that organizers of the club were flexible and they supported
pupils who were interested in competitions. In Nialls view, the emphasis on
social and informal events at the club was helpful in creating a positive and
holistic educational experience.
27
183
For some learners, tuition can spark their interest to seek other musical
opportunities, such as listening to commercial recordings, and participating in
sessions, concerts, and festivals.
According to some of my interviewees, attending weekly Irish traditional
music classes seemed somewhat like a school-like activity, and this raises some
important issues regarding the role of weekly tuition during the enculturation
process. For instance, Helen Gubbins states her experiences in CC classes were
kind of like school; it took on the feeling of school (Gubbins, interview). While
Helen learned many tunes during group tuition, pupils in her group class did not
exchange or play tunes together for enjoyment; Helen describes how her and her
peers learned and practiced repertoire taught in class, but this is where their
sharing ceased:
It wasnt very social. We didnt play tunes together
without a specific goal in mind. So there was very, very
little sharing of tunes, like Oh I got a new tune, do you
want to listen to it? They would be like, What are you
doing more work for? We only needed to learn these
tunes (Gubbins, interview).
Liz Doherty also compared her experiences in group tuition to school. Liz states:
Never ever did we think, Oh, I could go learn a few
more tunes myself. No way! It was a bit like school.
You read what you were told to read or you did
whatever maths you were told to do. It would never
occur to you to do a bit more I didnt have any
recordings of Irish music, we were never listening to it
in the house. There was nothing like that at all. You just
went to school, you went to dance, you went to music,
you practiced them all, and that was it. It wasnt really
until I was about sixteen that someone gave me a De
Dannan tape and The Traveler Reel was on it, and I
wanted to try to play it (Doherty, interview).
To Helen and Liz, learning Irish traditional music was initially an activity they
were expected to participate in, similar to school. Both Helen and Lizs families
had an interest in traditional music, and they were signed up for classes along
with their siblings. Learning new tunes, exploring, sharing, and playing Irish
184
traditional music with peers outside of class were not important aspects of Helen
or Lizs social lives as young children. However, as they developed into their
teens, Helen and Liz both gradually began to develop an intrinsic interest in Irish
traditional music. Helen and Lizs experiences in CC classes mark the
beginning of their enculturation into Irish traditional music. Musical
enculturation is a lifelong process, which involves diverse and numerous social
and musical experiences. In this way, attending weekly tuition is only part of the
more complete process of becoming a traditional musician.
In addition to structured classes, informal music-making and socializing
in branches and pipers club plays a role in musical enculturation. I propose that
informal and social activities complement the more structured learning processes
which take place during tuition. As mentioned in Chapter 2, many CC branches
and pipers clubs host their own traditional music sessions, and this provides
members with opportunities to listen and play tunes they learn during tuition, in a
social and informal context. CC or pipers club sessions are sometimes slightly
more organized, and more welcoming and encouraging to beginners than the
typical pub session (Henry 1989:71-3). For instance, weekly sessions at the
Douglas CC branch is led by instrumental tutors who ensure novice participants
are not excluded from the music-making (Barry Cogan, interview). While some
traditional musicians critique CC sessions for being contrived or too regimented
(Fleming 2004:247), this largely depends on the particular branch and the session
leader. The sessions that I observed at the Douglas CC were well-organized, as
tutors often encourage each musician to select a tune. The sessions were also
occasionally led by students and members of the branch, and the tutors interjected
very little, if at all.
While participating in tuition can foster learning and enculturation
processes, several of my interviewees suggest that it can be challenging to
develop a nuanced understanding of Irish traditional music and culture primarily
by attending classes. Some participants, instead, emphasize the importance of
listening and playing with other traditional musicians outside of class settings.
For instance, Niall Vallely suggests that without listening experiences, pupils may
have difficulty playing and understanding traditional style and rhythm. Niall
accentuates that learners gradually develop personal style and expression by
listening to a variety of styles outside of class situations. I asked Niall how
traditional musicians develop their own style of playing, to which he replied:
185
Kerry
Galway
Limerick
Sligo
Mayo
Clare
Limerick
Sligo
Leitrim
Mayo
Location varies
Roscommon
Donegal
Dublin
Donegal
188
Mid-February
Mid-late February
Late June
Late June
Early July
Second week of July
Mid-July
Mid-July
Late-July
Late-July
Mid-August
August
August
October
Late-December
Cork
Kerry
Clare
Clare
Kildare
Cavan
Galway
Cork
Clare
Limerick
Cork
Dublin
Clare
Clare
Cork
Armagh
Sligo
Longford
Kerry
Late-January
Late February
Late February
Late February
Late March
Early March
Mid-April
Week after Easter
Late April
Early May
Mid-May
May
Late-May
Mid-August
Mid-August
Mid-November
Late-August
Late-September
October
Many summer schools and festivals are hugely successful, some drawing
thousands of visitors every year. Some traditional music scholars suggest that the
most popular festivals and summer schools, such as the Fleadh Cheoil na
hireann and Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy, act as pilgrimage cites (Dowling
1999:65; OShea 2008). My fieldwork observations and interview data attest to
the popularity of these events; Most of my interviewees attended summer schools
and festivals throughout the many stages of their musical development, although
not always as registered students. Summer schools and festivals host workshops
and more informal activities, such as sessions, concerts, and dances. Every
summer, thousands of musicians and enthusiasts partake in these informal events
without enrolling for tuition, causing many summer schools to take on a festivallike atmosphere. During structured workshops, students have the opportunity to
learn new repertoire and instrumental techniques directly from their musical idols
and expert traditional musicians. They can also gain a more nuanced
understanding of traditional music style, expression, culture, and history. As
explored below, my research suggests that a combination of informal and
structured learning experiences at summer schools and festivals fosters musical
enculturation.
Numerous traditional music scholars recognize the educational and sociocultural benefits participating in traditional music summer schools and workshops
189
provides learners of Irish traditional music.28 Mac Aoidh suggests that workshops
are special events on the calendar that rekindle musicians enthusiasm to learn
and practice Irish traditional music:
As children attending local classes may lose some
interest over time, the attendance at weekend
workshops, learning new tunes and techniques, hearing
new players and, very importantly, meeting other
children and finding the fun in playing the music, serves
to fire their interest (1999:110).
Waldron and Veblen, who interviewed adult learners of Irish traditional music,
state that their interviewees valued summer schools because of the intense and
compact learning environment and also for of the sense of community fostered
during the events (2009:65). As explored later, many of my interviewees also
valued summer schools for these reasons.While rarely considered formal
schooling or training, summer schools and festivals allow students to become
fully immersed in Irish traditional music by participating in traditional music for
an entire week (Kearns and Taylor 2003:95). Pupils at summer schools are
encouraged to participate in musical, cultural, and social events outside the
classroom. This is similar to pupils who immerse themselves in the Irish language
during Irish college in the Gaeltacht.29
Summer schools and workshops at festivals provide a relatively intense
learning experience. Between the early morning classes and late night music
sessions, students often sleep very little, but learn a significant amount of
repertoire from their teachers and peers. While the intensity can provide
motivation, inspiration, musical growth, and immersion into the musical culture,
summer schools and festivals are short-term learning experiences. Mac Aoidh
views the length of these experiences as a shortcoming, and states that There are
fifty one other weeks in the year where the pupil is likely to be requiring tuition
(1999:109). Sommers Smith also states:
These schools offer an opportunity of experience
something like the traditional process in a compressed
For a full discussion about transmission and summer schools and festivals, see (Dowling 1999;
Hast and Scott 2004; Kearns and Taylor 2003; Mac Aoidh 1999; OConnor 2001;
hAllmhurin 2008; O'Shea 2005, 2008; Sommers Smith 2001; Vallely 1999, 2004b; Waldron
2006a; 2009a; Waldron and Veblen 2009).
29
A Gaeltacht is an Irish speaking area. At Irish Colleges during the summer, many Irish pupils
immerse themselves in the language by attending classes as well as informal social events
including cilithe and sessions.
28
190
unit of time, although they cannot replicate the longerterm musical relationship of earlier eras (2001:119).
Sky also argues that because of the compressed nature of these schools, they
cannot replace the experience of living in an Irish traditional music community
(Sky 1999:104). Due to their temporary nature, summer schools and workshops
at festivals are one of several important learning experiences during musical
enculturation. Other socio-musical interactions, such as long-term relationships
formed during weekly tuition and sessions, provide an equally important, but
different learning experience. Because each learning experience provides unique
educational advantages, learners who partake in multiple learning and musical
activities have diverse and rich learning experiences.
Through listening, watching, and imitating, traditional musicians learn
new instrumental techniques and aspects of style during summer schools and
workshops. In particular, these experiences benefit young traditional musicians
who primarily learn in mixed instrument groups during weekly tuition. As
explored earlier, many of my interviewees learned in mixed instrument tuition,
and many of their teachers did not play their particular instrument. While mixed
instrumental classes can transmit repertoire and basic technique, stylistic nuances
can be difficult to acquire in this setting. Several interviewees emphasize that
they learned a great deal about instrumental style and expression by attending
summer schools. Niall Vallely suggests that attending CCs summer school,
Scoil igse, was an influential learning experience, particularly because he did
not have a concertina teacher or mentor in his locality (Vallely, interview). Niall
was able to learn from exceptional concertina players and teachers, such as Noel
Hill. Additionally, Michael OSullivan developed his banjo technique and style,
in part, by attending summer schools and weekend workshops. Michael contrasts
learning the banjo in this context to learning in mixed instrument classes, which
were taught by a concertina player:
Banjo wasnt his [Con Herbert] main instrument. He
could play it alright but he didnt have much in the way
of technique. So, you would learn more in a workshop
than you would for a couple of years, because you were
dealing with specialist teachers (O'Sullivan, interview).
Aoife Granville also suggests that she attended a lot of workshops and I learned
an awful lot from them (interview). Because she did not have a flute teacher at
home, Aoife states that she would take everything, and I would learn away for
191
the rest of the year myself (Granville, interview). When pupils at summer
schools and workshops gain insight into style and technique, they can continue
the learning process throughout the year through personal exploration and
practice at home.
30
192
CC and Na Pobair Uilleann jointly organized the first summer school, but due
to differences of philosophy, CC withdrew from the committee after the first
year (Kearns and Taylor 2003:5; Hast and Scott 2004:55). As discussed in the
next section, Comhaltas established their own summer school, Scoil igse, which
has a slightly different educational philosophy.
Occurring the second week of July every summer since 1973, attendance
at SSWC has steadily increased over the years from a humble eighty students in
1973 to close to fifteen hundred by 2001 (see Table 4) (Kearns and Taylor
2003:120). Over 20,000 people have enrolled in the school since 1973, and up to
40 per cent of attendees travel from outside of Ireland (Kearns and Taylor
2003:148). Every July, the small town of Miltown Malbay, Co. Clare is overrun
with visitors of Willie Week. The atmosphere during the week resembles an
international music festival, more than a school.
Table 4: Attendance at Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy, 1973-201132
1976
1981
1987
1995
2001
2005
2010
2012
The school offers instrumental and dancing classes, which are held in
schools, GAA clubs, hotels, pubs, and private homes in the Miltown Malbay area.
Except for the occasional lecture, demonstration, and music-making in pubs,
singing has never occupied a major place in the weeks events (Kearns and
Taylor 2003:77). Tuition is available on most traditional instruments (except
32
The information on this table from 1973-2001 is based on a report by Kearns and Taylor
(2003:120). The remainder of the numbers are based on an interview with Harry Hughes I
conducted as part of my fieldwork. Harry, the director of the school, states that in recent years
the number of SSWC students has stabilized around the one thousand mark. Harry also
suggests the surge of pupil numbers in the late 1990s was due to a revitalization of set dancing
(Hughes, interview).
193
bodhrn) and pupils are expected to have acquired basic instrumental technique
prior to enrolment. An exception is made for beginning uilleann pipe students,
since Na Pobair Uilleann play a role in organizing and running SSWC. Classes
are relatively inexpensive; in 2011, it was only 140 for access to a whole week
of classes, workshops, lectures, and recitals.
On the first day of the school, learners are placed in differentiated classes
according to their experience and skill level. Students are asked to play a musical
selection in order for organizers to determine the most appropriate class. While
this procedure enhances the effectiveness of classes for both students and
teachers, it can feel like an audition. Some students may perform poorly if they
are nervous or not use to this formality. While problems can occur in placing
students into classes, the school cooperates with students who feel they have been
placed in the incorrect class. Students and teachers can request a change in
placement (Kearns and Taylor 2003:101). Despite the effort of the organizers,
skill levels in classes can still differ significantly, creating challenges for tutors
and students alike. However, students can form a strong social bond with one
another and their tutor throughout the week.
The schools philosophy directly affects learning processes and
experiences, and therefore, it is relevant to explore these issues here. Kearns and
Barry (2003) provide considerable insight into the schools philosophy and
history.33 The purpose of SSWC, in general, is to promote Irish traditional music
and its culture. Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy aims to maintain a cultural
context for their pupils to learn Irish traditional music. Kearns and Taylor discuss
this philosophy, highlighting the importance of learning in context:
What sets apart the classical and the traditional
musician is largely the context in which the repertoire is
both learned and performed. The Schools founding
objective was to enable the musical culture of the local
community to be passed on to future generations by its
practitioners, thus, hopefully, maintaining its
traditional context (2003:127).
The schools philosophy emerged from the traditional musicians and enthusiasts
33
Taylor researched the school and worked closely with the founding directors, Muiris Rchin
and Harry Hughes (Kearns and Taylor 2003; Taylor 1998). Taylors fieldwork with the
organizers offers important insight into the schools history, philosophy, and evolution over
the years. Although I corresponded with Harry Hughes via e-mail, it was not possible to
interview him or Muiris Rchin in person during my fieldwork. (Sadly, Rchin fell ill
and passed away in 2011).
194
who established the school. In this way, Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancys goals
and needs intersect with the passions and aspirations of participants within the
musical culture (Wenger, McDermott, and Snyder 2002:32). This at least partially
indicates why the organization has been so influential and successful over the
years. The schools purpose is directly relevant to practitioners of Irish traditional
music, and this is one reason why musicians have embraced and celebrated the
schools activities since its inception. While SSWC aims to provide learning
within a traditional context, the school offers a relatively new learning context.
The school reinvents, rather than preserves, the old context. Kearns and Taylor
question if the school is the heir of past traditions, is it a revival activity or, at
worst, perhaps some kind of invented tradition? (2003:146). Scoil Samhraidh
Willie Clancy promotes older cultural traditions, but the conscious attempt to
organize transmission and music-making in a new institutional and structured
context inevitably leads to changes in transmission, musical practice, and culture;
In contrast to the life experience of an older generation, to many young
musicians, playing music and attending classes at Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy
is a significant musical experience.
Organizers of the school promote activities that share characteristics of
Irish traditional music culture, such as non-commercialism, non-competitiveness,
and informal learning and music-making. The school aims to establish a cultural
context for learning based on their philosophy and ideas of Irish traditional music
culture. Since the school is primarily an amateur affair, run by enthusiasts for
enthusiasts. There has never been a serious attempt at sales or marketing (Kearns
and Taylor 2003:120). Kearns and Taylor outline the schools philosophy of noncommercialism, which is connected to the idea that traditional music is a shared
practice, rather than a commodity, and they state that the school:
offers no financial incentives to its teachers,
depending instead on their dedication to maintaining
and passing on a shared philosophy of the tradition.
Roughly, this translates to a belief that traditional
culture is not an object for individual commercial
exploitation, but a possession to be shared by a
community (2003:125).
The school also promotes the non-competitive nature of Irish traditional music.
SSWCs founding director, Muiris Rchin, argues that competitions are
totally against our philosophy. What we have is something that people come and
195
they learn, they enjoy it and, hopefully, it rubs off ( Rchin in Kearns and
Taylor 2003:66). Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy (and Na Pobair Uilleann)
advocates learning traditional music for the sake of appreciating it, rather than
treating it as a prelude to winning competitions ( hAllmhurin 2008:170). Scoil
Samhraidh Willie Clancy also emphasizes participation in informal musicmaking and learning. The numerous social and informal music activities
throughout the week cultivate communitas, or a sense of togetherness within a
community (Turner 1969). Structured classes are also characteristically informal
or non-formal, based on aural modelling. The school lacks a set curriculum, and
individual tutors have the freedom to select what and how they teach.
While Kearns and Taylor provide insight into the schools history and
philosophy, their descriptions occasionally include romantic notions that Scoil
Samhraidh Willie Clancy is more authentic than other schools and organizations.
Kearns and Taylor compare the SSWC to Scoil igse:
[CCs] annual summer school or Scoil igse was
launched Ironically, at branch level, many CC
teachers recommend their students to attend the Willie
Clancy Summer School in order to absorb the real
tradition (Kearns and Taylor 2003:140).
summer or perhaps every other summer, and some attended throughout their lives
as children, teenagers, and adults. The week has become a major site for
socializing and music-making. Because thousands of musicians visit during the
week, adult traditional musicians may attend Willie Week to catch up and play
tunes with other musicians they have befriended over the years. Musicians who
attended as pupils in the 1970s also enrol their own children in classes and enjoy
the informal music-making throughout the week (Seamus Sands, interview).
Second, I propose that informal activities throughout Willie Week can
affect the enculturation process, and these activities can be particularly
meaningful and motivational for teenage and adult musicians. As mentioned
early, the atmosphere during Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy is festival-like;
thousands of visitors attend solely to meet up with friends and to play music. Hast
and Scott suggest, While the formal activities are well attended, it is the informal
music making around the clock that attracts musicians from all over Ireland,
Europe, and America (2004:57). While musicians may have attended classes in
the past, the majority of visitors to Miltown Malbay are not enrolled in classes.34
The around the clock sessions during Willie Week attract thousands of musicians,
enthusiasts and drinkers whom fill pubs and streets (weather depending). During
my fieldwork, I ventured out around 11AM to play a session before the crowds
became overwhelming. A session was in full swing, but it was initially difficult to
surmise if the session was beginning or still going from the night before
(fieldnotes, 7 July 2010).
Many of my interviewees describe the informal activities and musicmaking during Willie Week as influential and motivational. John Reid suggests
that sessions during Willie Week encouraged him to move outside his comfort
zone and to meet new musicians. He emphasizes that he heard new repertoire and
styles, and that it is important to move outside your circle during the learning
process (Reid, interview). Geraldine OCallaghan also considers sessions in
Miltown Malbay to be educationally beneficial. She discusses her own learning
experiences:
We went to Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy, and when
we were very young, most of our time in Miltown
34
This is based on fieldwork observations and conversations with Willie Week attendees
(fieldnotes, 6 July 2010). While around 1,500 students are enrolled in classes annually, many
thousands crowd the streets, pubs, and surrounding areas of Miltown Malbay throughout Willie
Week.
197
There is, however, an unofficial singers pub in Miltown Malbay during Willie Week, where
attendees are expected to remain quiet and respectful during the songs.
198
be some of the most memorable events during Willie Week. The many sessions
around west Clare contribute to the festival-like atmosphere. Despite the
popularity of the sessions, organizers emphasize that the school is an educational
institution (Kearns and Taylor 2003:120). Sessions are ancillary activities
initiated by musicians who visit Miltown Malbay throughout the week. Although
technically unconnected to the school, sessions during Scoil Samhraidh Willie
Clancy are highly visible, well-attended, and significant social and musical
experiences. For this reason, I suggest that they play a role in many traditional
musicians learning and enculturation processes.
My interview data also suggests that enculturation is fostered through
intergenerational connections between teachers and students during classes and
informal music-making during Willie Week. The success of Scoil Samhraidh
Willie Clancy is partially due to the quality traditional teachers the school
attracts. Teachers are active, accomplished, and well-respected traditional
musicians within the community, and act as musical and social models for
imitation. Seamus Sands was influenced by interactions with such traditional
musicians and tutors. Seamus suggests that in addition to acquiring repertoire and
techniques in class, interacting with tutors at the school provided musical
inspiration that lasts many years:
I was lucky enough at a couple Willie Clancy weeks to
have the opportunity to be taught by John Kelly and
Bobby Casey - both of who are dead. Ok, technically it
was a help, but it was very inspirational as well to learn
from people like that. And even now quite a few years
later it still inspires me to think that I had the
opportunity to play with some of those people (Sands,
interview).
Scoil igse
Literally meaning school of learning, Scoil igse is a summer school organized
by CC. Comhaltas describes Scoil igse as a learning experience focused on
cultural discussion and participation.36 My interview data suggests that Scoil
36
Comhaltas advertise this on their fleadh Cheoil website, www.fleadhcheoil.ie/whats-on/scoileigse/, [accessed 11 June 2012].
199
igse and Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy are the two most influential traditional
music summer schools. According to Siobhn N Chonarin, a CC
administrator, recent attendance at Scoil igse has been between 500-850 pupils
depending on the year, but these figures can be as high as 3,000 once visitors to
Scoil igse recitals and sessions are also included (N Chonarin, interview).
Although the organizations philosophies differ, learning processes at Scoil isge
and SSWC have several similarities. Many well-known traditional musicians
teach at both summer schools, and have the autonomy to decide what is taught
their instrumental classes. In both summer schools, pupils are generally taught
through aural demonstration and imitation, and when notation is provided, it
usually functions as a memory aid. Both summer schools also host an array of
informal music-making and social activities. Despite these parallels, Scoil igse
provides a slightly different learning experience than Scoil Samhraidh Willie
Clancy. In this section, I explore my interviewees learning experiences at Scoil
igse, many of which significantly influenced their musical development.
Compared to the SSWC, there is comparatively less literature about Scoil igses
history, philosophy, and activities,37 and therefore, much of the discussion below
is based on my field research.
Established in 1972, Scoil igse traditionally takes place in August, the
week before the Fleadh Cheoil na hireann. Scoil igse students often compete
during the Fleadh and arrive a week early to learn new tunes and techniques from
well-known traditional musicians. Then, they can try out their new tunes and
techniques during the Fleadhs various activities. In contrast to Scoil Samhraidh
Willie Clancy, students of Scoil igse are usually preparing for competitions the
following week. In this way, although Scoil igse does not actively promote
competition, it is closely connected to the competitive culture at the Fleadh
Cheoil. While CCs competition structure is controversial amongst scholars and
musicians, Scoil igse is generally acknowledged as one of the most
educationally and culturally beneficial aspects of the Fleadh.38 Similar to Scoil
Samhraidh Willie Clancy, Scoil igse accepts traditional instrumentalists of all
ages, but tuition is not provided to absolute beginners. Students are also placed in
appropriate classes depending on their skill level. Scoil igse not only provides
For a history of Scoil igse see (Vallely 1999:330; www.fleadhcheoil.ie, [accessed 11 June
2012].
38
I discuss the Fleadh Cheoil and CC competitions in the following section.
37
200
tuition, but also aims to promote cultural immersion. CC asserts that Scoil igse
provides:
quality teaching of quality material in a family/youthfriendly cultural immersion setting and as a result it
gained in popularity primarily through word-of-mouth
(www.fleadhcheoil.ie/whats-on/scoil-eigse, accessed 11
June 2012].
For Lisa, learning from Martin Hayes at Scoil igse was not merely a moment
when important musical information was passed on; it was significant in terms of
her identity formation as a traditional musician. Lisa moved from a teenage phase
of disinterest, towards an adult appreciation of Irish traditional music. Interacting
with Martin during Scoil igse was a powerful experience for Lisa during a time
when motivation was problematic. Michael OSullivan also believes Scoil igse
classes motivated him during his teenage years. Michael took banjo classes at
Scoil igse with Brian McGrath, and he describes the classes as a huge influence
39
(Liz Doherty, James Duggan, Helen Gubbins, Geraldine OCallaghan, Lisa OSullivan, Michael
OSullivan, and Niall Vallely, interviews).
201
that time. Workshops were a huge factor when youre a teenager in keeping you
interested and realizing that there are other people playing (O'Sullivan,
interview). As a student at Scoil igse, Michael acquired many tunes and banjo
techniques. More importantly perhaps, Michael gained inspiration being around
other musicians his own age, and realizing that traditional music was relevant to
his social life. This provided the impetus to continue participating throughout his
teenage years and into adulthood.
Interviewees also suggest that Scoil igse classes are useful and effective
learning experiences, because they are led by master musicians. During classes,
learners are able to observe and imitate exceptional models of their particular
instrument, and this can transmit instrumental techniques as well as stylistic
nuances. Over the years, Geraldine OCallaghan suggests that she gained insight
into many aspects of fiddle style by interacting with tutors and exceptional
traditional musicians at Scoil igse. Geraldine discusses her experiences:
I remember going to Scoil igse one year and Denis
Liddy was teaching me. And he taught me an upper
cut and it was something that I didnt know
previously and it was something that immediately
became a part of how I regularly played. So it was
something very very small, but incredibly influential
(OCallaghan, interview).
The Fleadh Cheoil na hireann is also referred to as the All-Ireland Fleadh, Fleadh Cheoil, or
202
203
during the tourist off-season, such as the Ennis Trad Festival held in November.
Because traditional music festivals differ significantly in purpose and activities,
the educational effects of festival participation are multifaceted. For the purposes
of exploring the educational implications of attending traditional music festivals,
I have classified the types of festivals into three broad categories: educationbased, competition-based, and performance-based festivals.
Education-based festivals have explicit aims and goals to transmit Irish
traditional music and its culture. Classes, lectures, and recitals are usually the
primary activities and the focus of these festivals, although informal musicmaking and performances, such as sessions, also commonly feature. Since many
summer schools have festival-like atmospheres, it could be suggested that they
also fall into this category. Some education-based festivals, such as Cruinni na
bhFliit and the William Kennedy Piping Festival, promote the transmission of
particular traditional instruments.
Competition-based festivals aim to promote traditional music by raising
standards through organized competitions. Such festivals include, the Feis Ceoil,
Oireachtas na Gaeilge, and CCs fleadhanna.42 CC competitions are by far the
most popular in terms of participation and attendance. Indeed, as explored later
on, when discussing traditional music competitions my interviewees always
referred to CC events.
Table 5: List of performance-based Irish traditional music festivals43
Name of festival:
Location:
Typically held:
Temple Bar Trad Fest
Ballincollig Winter Festival
Corofin Traditional Festival
Clifden Traditional Music Festival
Baltimore Fiddle Fair
Patsy Farrell Festival
Ballyshannon Folk & Traditional Music Festival
Feakle International Traditional Music Festival
Masters of Tradition
Dingle TradFest
Tulla Trad Festival
Cork Folk Festival
Ennis Trad Festival
Dublin
Cork
Clare
Galway
West Cork
Longford
Donegal
Clare
Cork
Kerry
Clare
Cork
Clare
January
January
February
April
May
August
August
August
August
September
September
October
November
Oireachtas na Gaeilge is an event which hosts performances and competitions of Irish music,
song, dance, and poetry.
43
All the spellings on this table and throughout this chapter are the official spellings of each
festival (such as the Dingle TradFest, and the Ennis Trad Festival). This is by no means an
extensive list. A relatively up-to-date list of Irish traditional music festivals (and links) is
available online at www.livetrad.com.
42
204
205
musicians meet other practitioners and are exposed to new styles and repertoire.
The interview data suggests that interacting with other musicians at festivals
sessions is musically, educationally, and socially influential in terms of musical
enculturation.45 Festival sessions are intense, compared to weekly pub sessions;
Cormac De Frein suggests that playing in long sessions at festivals forces him to
explore his memory for tunes. Listening and playing with other musicians also
reminds Cormac of tunes he may have forgotten over the years. Cormac states:
If I go to a festival and I'm playing for the whole day,
about four or five hours You end up dragging tunes
out of your head that you haven't played in years If
you're playing nonstop for two days, and you're trying to
think of tunes you haven't played yet, its amazing the
amount of tunes that come out of your head. Or
someone else plays one that you use to play So, that's
what I like about festivals really. Just tunes you haven't
played in ages and someone reminds you of it (De Frein,
interview).
For traditional musicians, festival sessions can be a different and exciting musical
experience, which breaks the monotony of everyday life. Lisa OSullivan
suggests that the weekly pub session can become a little insular, but attending
sessions at festivals can reinvigorating the learning process:
Being in the same session every week - it just becomes a
little bit insular, and sometimes that one festival might
just inspire you just go I'm going to learns loads of new
tunes! I always find that I come back from a festival
just buzzing and feeling all inspired (O'Sullivan,
interview).
Lisa gains inspiration from festivals by hearing new tunes and playing with other
musicians, and I suggest this is a significant learning experience, especially
during adulthood. Experienced traditional musicians (those who have played for
more than a decade), tend to learn almost entirely through informal means,
including listening and playing in sessions and along to commercial recordings. I
suggest that informal music-making at festivals are particularly meaningful to
teenage and adult practitioners; participating in festival sessions plays a role in
the long-term process of musical enculturation.
45
(Lisa OSullivan, Michael OSullivan, John Reid, Seamus Sands, Hammy Hamilton, Niall
Vallely, Cormac De Frein, Toms Canainn, interviews).
206
Hamilton also highlights that socializing and playing sessions at the Fleadh
Cheoil is nearly equal to the competitions in importance. He suggests:
Alongside the competitions, the social aspect of the
fleadhs was of immense importance. Only a small
minority of the musicians who would attend would be
directly involved in competition, the others would
simply see the event as an opportunity for music making
and meeting friends (1996:166-7).48
For a discussion of CCs role during the revival, see (Hamilton 1996:164; Hast and Scott
2004:49-51; Kaul 2009; hAllmhurin 1998:123; O'Shea 2008, 107; Vallely 2004b:29;
Williams 2010).
47
Musicians compete in four different age categories; under 12, 12-15, 15-18, and the over 18
(senior) competition. Regional competitions take place throughout Ireland and the rest of the
world. For more information about competition rules and regulations see (www.comhaltas.ie).
48
Williams also suggests that Perhaps the most important aspect of any festival or competition is
the spontaneous musical activity occurring off stage. At almost any Irish festival, most of the
nearby pubs are packed with bystanders who watch [the] musicians (2010:215).
46
207
The traditional musicians who participated in Veblens research also valued the
camaraderie and festive occasions, so much so that, as Veblen points out, they
often did not think to mention that they competed during the fleadh (1991:90).
Because of the social nature of events at the festival, to many musicians, the
Fleadh is a site of socialization, enculturation, and learning.
To musicians born before the 1940s, the establishment of the Fleadh
Cheoil na ireann transformed socio-musical life and modes of transmission.
Prior to the Fleadh, opportunities to play with hundreds of traditional musicians
from diverse localities were rare (perhaps except for traveling musicians). The
Fleadh made it possible to interact with a large network of traditional musicians.
Toms Canainn discusses how the Fleadh provided a site of communal musical
and social exchanges, and significantly impacted his musical life:
Sean MacNamara, round about 1956, went over to the
49
(Mary Bergin, Liz Doherty, James Duggan, Hammy Hamilton, Connie OConnell, Conal
Grda, Lisa, OSullivan, Michael OSullivan, Seamus Sands, and Niall Vallely, interviews).
208
Fleadh at Ennis, and he came back with this big news all
about Comhaltas Ceoltir ireann and the Fleadh
Cheoil. And that changed our whole perspective. So
then, we started going every year to the Fleadh,
wherever it was. So that was a big thing for us, because
then you would meet what we would call real Irish
musicians. You would be picking up tunes and after a
while they would be picking up tunes from you, so that
was a very very nice time ( Canainn, interview).
While participating in the Fleadhs diverse activities, Toms heard new repertoire
and styles, but more importantly, he was able to practice and celebrate Irish
traditional music in a new context alongside a multitude of other practitioners.
Such interactions are crucial during the learning process, and certainly played a
role in Tomss musical enculturation.
For musicians who attend regularly, the annual Fleadh can become a
consistent, yet still exciting routine. My research suggests that many traditional
musicians attend the Fleadh throughout the various stages of musical
development, throughout childhood, adolescence, and into adulthood. The
educational implications of this are numerous and significant. A musicians
experience and their participation in the Fleadh can differ significantly depending
on their age and stage of development. In general, childrens experiences at the
Fleadh include participating in Scoil igse, competitions, and listening, watching,
and playing in daytime and early evening sessions. Teenagers also engage in
these activities, but their experiences can differ to that of children because they
often focus much more on socializing with their peers. The adult musicians attend
gigs, concerts, and participate in informal music-making, but most adult
musicians do not compete or attend Scoil igse. Lisa OSullivan suggests that the
Fleadh provides different outlets for learners at varying stages of their musical
development. She discusses how her experience at the Fleadh changed over the
years:
I just kept going [to the Fleadh] all the way through.
You saw other people your age playing, and it became a
little scene, a little thing. And then as an older teenager
and early twenties, the whole drinking thing became a
little more prevalent and became a bit more about the
fun and meeting boys and all this carry on. I still really
enjoy them today (OSullivan, interview).
When learners feel that a practice is relevant to their lives, they are more likely to
continue participating and to identify themselves as traditional musicians. While
making meaningful connections to other practitioners at the Fleadh, learners can
also feel a connection to the community of practice. The Fleadh Cheoil acts as a
site for face-to-face networking, socializing, learning, and music-making.
In addition to establishing new connections, my research also suggests
that while attending the Fleadh, musicians can strengthen already established
relationships with their peers. For instance, many local communities and CC
branches prepare, travel, and attend the Fleadh as a group. Preparing for
competitions can bring a community together. Hast and Scott suggest that
competitions can be community builders: at the branch or regional level, they
bring people of different generations together to participate in a local community
event (2004:50). Lisa OSullivan feels that the Fleadh strengthened preexisting
bonds she had with peers and acquaintances from her own locality. She explains:
There was a real community thing; we got on a bus and
the whole small village that I'm from went and
participated in these fleadhs and just had so much fun
(OSullivan, interview).
50
(Mary Bergin, Matt Cranitch, Cormac De Frein, Liz Doherty, James Duggan, Aoife Granville,
Helen Gubbins, Martin Hayes, Geraldine OCallaghan, Toms Canainn, Connie OConnell,
Conal Grda, Lisa OSullivan, Michael OSullivan, John Reid, Seamus Sands, and Niall
Vallely, interviews).
211
Burnsed and Sochinski also suggest that Music educators are generally divided in their
opinions about the effects of the competition movement (1983:25). For further discussion and
a history of music competitions, see also (Austin 1990; Burnsed and Sochinski 1983; Camp
1990; Chenoweth 1947; Dykema 1923; Fowles 1929; Jones 1943; Maddy 1936; Miller 1994;
Sloboda 1990; Walker 1998; Wilson 1926).
212
214
of studying for piano exams to learning only a few tunes for CC competitions:
to learn your three tunes to play in the fleadh every
year; Its a bit like how people learn classical piano
Youre taught in order to do the exam and you learn the
piece for the exam, but you dont actually learn any
music really... If thats all there is, it doesnt seem to
work (Vallely, interview).
This highlights how extrinsic rewards can significantly affect the learning
process; Several interviewees suggest that some learners focus on perfecting a
handful of tunes in order to compete well during fleadhanna.53 When musicians
(or their teachers) choose this method, the learner focuses on performing and
competing well, rather than learning a broad repertoire of tunes for casual musicmaking in sessions, for instance. Extrinsic rewards motivate their technical and
stylistic development, perhaps at the expense of a large repertoire of tunes.
Learners can also experience intrinsic rewards during music competitions.
Csikszentmihalyi provides the example that a composer may be extrinsically
motivated to complete a composition in order to get paid, but while composing,
he is likely to be intrinsically motivated to create his music (2000:22). While
extrinsic rewards are not detrimental to learners, Csikszentmihalyi suggests that
intrinsic motivations play a significant role in developing creativity and achieving
flow a mental state in which a person is immersed and intensely focused on a
particular activity. He states, People who enjoy intrinsic rewards describe what
they are doing as significantly less competitive and more creative than those who
rely to a greater extent on external incentives (Csikszentmihalyi 2000:32). My
interviewees narratives suggest that during childhood, competitions acted as an
extrinsic motivator. Eventually, all of my interviewees became intrinsically
interested in Irish traditional music, and no longer relied on extrinsic motivations
to play or practice. In this way, extrinsic rewards may be useful to aid learners to
the stage of musical development in which they begin to intrinsically enjoy
music-making and learning.
Success in competitions can motivate or inspire musicians to continue
participating in traditional music-making both non-competitively and
53
Helen Gubbins states, There were many disadvantages to doing Fleadh Cheoil competitions
every year, and just learning and perfecting your three or four tunes (interview). Liz Doherty
also suggests, We never learned many tunes, but we could play the tunes we knew very well.
So for all the years that I went to classes with Dinny, Id say I probably learned about a dozen
tunes (Doherty, interview).
215
competitively. Winners are praised for their abilities and accomplishments, and
this recognition validates them as traditional musicians and may raise their level
of self-confidence. A few interviewees mention that success in competitions
fueled their incentive to continue competing. Matt Cranitch states, I did enter
competitions and was successful at a young age. So, that acted as a type of
impetus as well to continue (Cranitch, interview). Even modest achievement in
competitions seems to motivate learners to continue. James Duggan discusses his
experiences at CC competitions, and suggests without modest success, he may
not have continued competing as long as he did:
Ive been going to the All-Ireland fleadh every year If
in those first couple of years, I hadn't won anything, I
don't know if I would have bothered with the fleadhs
I came in second in the All-Ireland in the airs I won
the under-18 in Munster in 2007, got second in the AllIreland. So I guess the little bit of successes here and
there that's probably why and what kept me interested in
competitions (Duggan, interview).
When musicians feel that they have performed well (not necessarily only when
they win), competitions can be positive learning experiences.
Learners may face challenges and issues while preparing for, performing,
and dealing with the results of music competitions. Musicians often highlight the
inherent subjectivity involved in judging music competitions. For instance,
Seamus Sands asked: How can you take four or five competent musicians and
say one's better than the other? You're really choosing the style that you like
(Sands, interview). Related to issues of subjectivity, educators, scholars, and
musicians also have concerns about music competitions standardizing musical
expression and promoting conformity. Miller argues the inherent conformity of
music competitions causes them to be the antithesis of productivity (1994:31).
Miller also discusses how competitions inherently involve conformity and
standardization, and how this affects musical creativity:
In order for competition to work, people must be
measured by the same standard. The same rules apply to
everyone, and the game must be played the same way
each time. Creativity and individualism are the opposite
of competition because the very nature of creativity is to
originate something new that defies standardization
(1994:31).
54
217
Martin also suggests that he competed during a freer time, suggesting that he
believes competitions are currently perhaps more constricting.56
Some musicians and commentators feel that regional discrimination
(Henry 1989:91) is rife within CCs competitive structure, and competitions
may negatively affect the development and transmission of regional styles. Mac
Aoidh suggests that because tune types, such as highlands and barn dances, are
disallowed from CC competitions, the organization is biased against Donegal
style fiddle playing (Mac Aoidh 1994, 1997). Cranitch also points out that polkas
and slides, prominent tune types in the Sliabh Luachra area, are also not accepted
in CC competitions (2003:24). CC competitions only permit standard
repertoire common throughout Ireland, such as reels, jigs, and hornpipes. While
these are valid concerns, it must be noted that several traditional musicians who
play in distinct regional styles have won All-Ireland titles. While Mac Aoidh
criticizes CCs policy towards Donegal fiddle playing, in his book he also
highlights Donegal fiddlers who have won All-Ireland titles (Mac Aoidh 1994).
The results also suggest that All-Ireland champions come from diverse localities
and regional styles. Furthermore, Keegan suggests that CC competitions have
played a role in reviving regional styles:
there had been a revival of interest in the older,
regional styles largely through the efforts of Comhaltas
who reward their reproduction through a system of
competitions (1992:131).
Mary Bergin also emphasized that In competitions now-a-days, people are looking to see who
is adjudicating and what they are going to look for (Bergin, interview).
218
confident, and the less fortunate down motivational dead-end streets (Austin
1990:24-5). Musicians who struggle with competitions may question their
musical ability and legitimacy as traditional musicians. Entering another music
competition can begin to seem emotionally risky. Some learners may decide that
the benefits of competitions are not worth this risk, and withdraw from
competitions. (In more serious cases, some may even withdraw from musicmaking in general). Chenoweth also suggests that competitions can be
emotionally detrimental to winners as well as losers:
One of the chief evils of music competition is not
merely its unwholesome influence on those who fail but
also on those who succeed in winning honors.
Paradoxical as this may sound, any mental hygienist
will spot the danger in this immediately. It is the danger
of becoming a perfectionist (1947:21).
220
Niall Vallely identifies himself as a competitive person, but also suggests that
music competitions did not suit his learning style or preferences. Niall discusses
his experience competing at fleadhanna, highlighting how he often became bored
with only preparing a few tunes for the competition:
I had a funny relationship with the competitions. Im a
competitive sort of a person. I like trying winning
games and stuff like that, but I never actually did very
well in the fleadh competitions. I just didnt relate to it...
Id kind of got bored of practicing the one tune to play
it. So Id often change my mind at the last minute and
play some other tune, and then make a mess of it. I
never really did well in the competitions (Vallely,
interview).
It is beyond the scope of this thesis to investigate the possible gender differences involved in
CC competition, and further research is needed in the future.
221
outgrow competitions.59 For instance, John Reid states that You kind of give up
competitions after 18, that's it... (Reid, interview). Some interviewees stopped
competing after achieving their competitive goals. Others experienced
uncomfortable or negative emotions, and competing no longer seemed useful or
satisfying. Martin Hayes discusses how and why he stopped competing during his
late teens:
I was nineteen or something; that was the end of that.
You do outgrow it. It was fine, but you reach a point
where the idea of music as a competition doesnt make
sense anymore. Kids can respond to it in that sense, but
I actually didnt feel that competitive about it (Hayes,
interview).
Additionally, Conal Grda won several All-Ireland metals, but Conal observed
the negative effects losing had on many of his peers. He discusses his experiences
competing and why he decided to withdraw from competitions around age
sixteen:
I won the All-Ireland a few times, on different
instruments, in different age groups. But when I was
sixteen or seventeen, I just said 'naw'. I remember
walking out to my father and said, 'Never again.' He
said, 'Why? But you just won!' I said, I know, but I
didn't like it, ya know? The main reason was a lot of the
guys who came in second or third were good friends of
mine, and I thought they were great players. And just to
see the kind of impact on them, as a result going against
them, I just thought it wasn't really kosher. It just didn't
seem to fit ( Grda, interview).
In this way, music competitions can create social tension among musicians
(Fleming 2004:242).
If competitive performances are common amongst children and
Meek (1987:17-8), Munnelly (1999:144), and Veblen (1991:121) also discuss how musicians
tend to stop participating in their teens or twenties.
59
(Michael OSullivan, Conal Grda, John Reid, Martin Hayes, Connie OConnell, interviews).
58
222
Photograph by author
It must be acknowledged that CC does host and encourage noncompetitive performances in their branches and during fleadhanna. For a number
of years, the Fleadh Cheoil has featured a gig-rig a large stage in the centre of
the host town which provides free entertainment to festivalgoers (see Image 7).
On the gig-rig, one can view traditional musicians of all ages performing to large
audiences. However, during my field observations, I noticed that most of the acts
that performed on the gig-rig were large group ensembles (Fieldnotes, 18 August
2011). The Fleadh currently hosts more non-competitive music-making than in
224
years past, but children and teens generally do not play solos to audiences unless
they are involved in competitions. Additionally, many of the non-competitive
concerts and gigs at the Fleadh Cheoil are platforms for adult musicians, such as
well-known traditional music groups and solo artists. I argue that learners would
benefit tremendously if the Fleadh Cheoil hosted non-competitive solo and small
group recitals.
I have discussed how informal music-making and socializing at the
Fleadh Cheoil na ireann plays a role in learning and enculturation processes. I
also explored the advantages and limitations of participating in CC
competitions. Due to a number of factors, including learning styles and
personality, participating in competitions is an effective and motivating learning
experience to some learners, but not necessarily to all or most. Walker (1998)
discusses the history of competition culture, specifically within the context of
school jazz and concert band programmes in the United States. He suggests that
because the merit of music competition continues to raise questions, music
education in the US has generally and gradually shifted towards non-competitive
performances (Walker 1998:221). Some propose that recitals and video journals
are more effective than competitions in assessing students progress (Austin
1990:25). I suggested that CC can host even more informal and non-competitive
performances to their already diverse programme.
Concluding Thoughts
In this chapter, I have examined common learning experiences that occur in more
organized settings, including tuition at clubs and organizations, traditional music
summer schools, and festivals. Many of the learning experiences discussed in this
chapter involve informal and non-formal learning processes, including aural
learning and imitation. In the first section, I discussed some of my interviewees
experiences learning traditional music in school. While some had profound
experiences, music learning and enculturation largely occurs outside of formal
schooling. The majority of my interviewees did not learn their primary
instrument in school, and interviewees who did have access to instrumental
classes in school acquired much of their repertoire and instrumental techniques
outside of school. In contrast, the majority of my interviewees received extracurricular tuition in organizations, such as CC and pipers clubs. I have
225
suggested that during tuition learners form social connections with their teachers
and peers, and that these social connections play a role in musical enculturation. I
also focused on the two largest summer schools Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy
and Scoil igse and described how structured classes and informal activities at
summer schools aid the enculturation process. Lastly, I discussed the largest
traditional music festival Fleadh Cheoil na hireann and explored the various
benefits and disadvantages of participating in competitions. My research
indicates that informal, non-formal, and social events at the Fleadh Cheoil have
the greatest impact on musical enculturation. This raises many questions about
the importance of the competitive events.
Within the traditional music community, learning by attending weekly
tuition, summer schools, and festivals are common learning experience.
However, none of my interviewees learned Irish traditional music only in these
settings. The process of becoming a traditional musician involves several other
informal, non-formal, and social learning experiences. Conversely, some
interviewees were self-taught and learned almost entirely outside institutional and
organizational settings (Hammy Hamilton, Tmas Canainn, Mary Bergin,
Connie OConnell, interviews). While organizations provide numerous
opportunities for people to learn, play, and socialize with traditional musicians
and teachers, it is incorrect to suggest that learners need to attend tuition, summer
schools, festivals, and participate in competitions in order to develop into a
traditional musician.
Traditional musicians commonly learn by engaging with other traditional
musicians at CC branches, pipers clubs, summer schools, and festivals. I argue
that the more structured learning practices described in this chapter complement
the more informal experiences discussed in Chapter 2. Unstructured, informal
experiences provide learners with essential social and musical contexts in which
to learn and play traditional music. Learning experiences in organized settings
provide a structure to the learning process, and provide learners with goals,
motivation, direct instruction, and diverse opportunities to interact with other
practitioners. As many interviewees suggest, experiencing traditional music
outside institutional settings is critical in order to develop a rich understanding of
Irish traditional music and its culture. I argue that musical enculturation is a
lifelong and complex process which requires multiple opportunities to listen,
play, and engage with Irish traditional musicians in various contexts.
226
Chapter 4
The Use of Technology during the Enculturation Process
The purpose of this chapter is to analyse how Irish traditional musicians use
technology and how this effects enculturation. In this thesis, technology refers to
the artefacts and physical materials which represent, recreate, or capture music
aurally, visually, or audio-visually. During the enculturation process, many Irish
traditional musicians commonly use print materials, audio and video recordings,
the internet, and other innovations such as smartphones. Using technology to
learn Irish traditional music may seem like a completely different process to the
social, face-to-face learning practices described in Chapters 2 and 3. However,
throughout this chapter I suggest that engagement with various forms of
technology is a socially situated practice and plays a significant role in the
enculturation process.
Technology effects music-making, transmission, and enculturation in
complex ways, as Deschnes suggests:
the technological developments of the past hundred
years or so have irremediably transformed our relation
to music, making the musical situations considerably
more complex and elusive (1998:139).
Pea and Brown argue that new interactive technologies redefine in ways yet to
be determined what it means to know and understand, and what it means to
become literate or an educated citizen (1993:vii-viii). Wilson and Peterson
urge ethnographers to investigate technology as a cultural process, to specifically
explore how people use and find meaning in their use of technology (Wilson and
Peterson 2002:461). Technology is not separate from cultural processes; it is a
part of cultural processes in modern society. In this chapter I argue that engaging
with various forms of technology is a significant part of what traditional
musicians do.
The chapter begins with a review of germane literature from multiple
academic disciplines, and explores the general effects of modern technology to
socio-musical life and corresponding educational implications. In this first
section, I establish a theoretical context for issues that emerged during my field
research. This is followed by an exploration of the ways traditional musicians use
written sources, audio recordings, visual recordings, the internet, and other
emerging technologies during their enculturation. According to the interview
data, written sources and audio recordings are the most commonly used
technologies, while learning through visual recordings, the internet, and new
emerging technologies are less pervasive. All of these forms of technology have
significant implications for teaching, learning, and enculturation processes within
Irish traditional music.
228
(Chanan 1995, 2002; Deschnes 1998; Drucker 1970; Gracyk 1997; Lave and Wenger 1991;
Lysloff 2003; McCarthy 1999; McLuhan 1962, 1964; Pea and Brown 1993; Rheingold 1993;
Rice 1994; Tomasi 2007; Turino 2008; Volman and ten Dam 2007; Wilson and Peterson 2002;
Wenger 1998; Wright 1992).
229
Consequently, the modern world seems more localized and closely connected.
Technology can induce a sense of community across large geographic borders.
McLuhans global village (1962) refers precisely to this phenomenon. Chanan
argues that since music from all corners of the globe is now available
everywhere at the touch of a button, music is no longer limited to traditional
concepts of community (1995:9). Musical communities and identities are no
longer constrained by social, political, national, or geographical borders (Chanan
1995; Lysloff 2003; Shepherd 2003). Within the traditional music literature,
Ahern also suggests that the concept of neighbour has changed due to
technological influences:
New tunes are still learned through a highly efficient
grapevine, but these days, the concept of 'neighbour' has
been expanded considerably. Tim Browne, a merchant
sailor on board ship in the South Atlantic, learns a new
reel from a tape recorded by a friend of his at a session
in Kinsale. A fiddle player in Munich learns a hornpipe
2
See also (Chanan 1995; McLuhan 1962, 1964; Ong 1982:136; Wenger 1998:131).
230
Traditional musicians purposely listen in a session when attempting to learn a new tune, for
instance. When a musician leaves the session table to chat with other patrons of the pub they
are engaging in distracted listening. Green uses and discusses the terms distracted,
attentive, and purposeful listening in her research on how popular musicians learn (2002,
2008).
231
always remain a significant musical experience. Turino discusses one reason why
live music-making remains attractive:
Even now when many people's main experience with
music is via recordings the sound alone I think many
still harbor the old idea that music has something to do
with people, communication, and direct connection and
there is a desire for a human aura (2008:63).
From this perspective, in this chapter I explore how traditional musicians use
technology. The use of technology is not viewed here as an inauthentic or
untraditional learning method, but rather as a valid practice which is situated in
the current musical culture and social environment.
Some scholars view technology as an extension of humanity and human
consciousness. Tomasi suggests that over the centuries, the use of technology has
become a part of us:
[a] technological device can reach such a degree of
familiarity that it becomes indistinguishable from our
psychophysical personality. In this sense, we experience
technology not as instrumentation, but in intimacy
(Tomasi 2007:411).
From this perspective the use of technology is a significant part of being human
and is not an unauthentic or inhuman experience. Tomasis view that technologies
can become embodied, a part of who we are, correlates with Gardners theory of
distributed intelligence. Gardner views technology as an extension of human
intelligence.4 He suggests that:
4
Pea and Brown similarly argue that tools and representational media that culture provides to
support, extend, and reorganize mental functioning (1993:vii). For a further discussion see
232
People create, use, and manipulate technology, and in turn technology alters
aspects of society. However, technology only becomes meaningful through
human action. This highlights that the use of technology is a socially situated
practice, which needs to be investigated alongside other cultural phenomena.
(Gardner 1983, 1990, 1991; McLuhan 1962, 1964; Moore 1992; Tomasi 2007).
It is beyond the scope of this thesis to comment on the use of technology throughout the diverse
musical cultures in the world. For a discussion see (Campbell 1991; Green 2002, 2008; Nettl
1992; Neuman 1990; Rice 1994).
233
See (Arias 1998; Beckstead 2001; Bissell 1998; Moore 1992; Peters 1992; Sanders 1992; Waters
1990; Webster 2002; Willman 1992; Wright 1992).
234
I discuss these ethnographies in more depth throughout this chapter (Berliner 1993, 1994;
Cranitch 2006; Fairbairn 1993; Firth 1998, 2003; Green 2002, 2005a, 2008; Hamilton 1996;
Neuman 1990; Nettl; 1992, 2005; McCarthy 1990, 1999b, 1999; OShea 2005, 2008; Rice
1994; Turino 2008; Veblen 1991).
235
Rice highlights how the media significantly affects transmission practices and
offered Bulgarian musicians a new type of social experience.
Educational and developmental scholars often highlight that using
technology has educational limitations as well as advantages. Music educators
generally acknowledge that exposure to music is essential to musical
development. The convenience of media and phonographic technology can
increase listening practices and exposure to music, and in this way, fosters the
learning process. However, Gordon discourages the overuse of technology,
especially during early developmental stages. He states:
A parent knows intuitively that playing recordings of
someone speaking for the child is not nearly as
beneficial as the child hearing live speech. Analogously,
being exposed to music through the media will not be as
efficient as introducing children in a personal manner to
the music of their culture (1999:43).
In Gordons view, social interaction is one of the most important factors during
musical development (1997, 1998, 1999). He suggests that over relying on audio
recordings prohibits socio-musical interactions between children and adults, since
live music-making can become limited. However, Gordon and supporters of his
Music Learning Theory (Bluestine 2000; Valerio et al 1998), also urge parents to
expose their children to a variety of rhythmic metres, tonalities, and musical
styles from around the world. Realistically, parents cannot perform multiple types
of world music, and therefore, audio and video recordings of musical
performances are useful to introduce children to the diverse music-making
around the world (Gracyk 1997). This is not to suggest that Gordons theories are
contradictory; this discussion highlights that technology can affect learning,
development, and enculturation in multidimensional ways.
1997; OConnor 2001; Riada 1982; OShea 2008), and others investigate
changes to transmission and cultural practices (Crantich 2006; Fairbairn 1993;
Hamilton 1996; Hast and Scott 2004; Kearney 2009; McCarthy 1990, 1999;
Veblen 1991). One common concern is that by canonizing particular versions of
tunes, print and phonographic technology can lead to standardization. Veblen
suggests that technology can, freeze a tune in time and allow definitive versions
to exist, but which all transitory versions may be measured (1991:182).8
There has yet to be a major study or dissertation focusing solely on the
educational implications of the use of technology within Irish traditional music
culture, although numerous scholars have commented on the subject.9 Two
prominent education researchers, McCarthy (1990, 1999) and Veblen (1991),
discuss the media and technology, but the influence of technology on
transmission practices is not the focus of their research. While this dissertation
contributes an initial exploration into the role of technology during the
enculturation process, further investigation is needed.
All twenty of my interviewees discussed using technology to experience,
listen, and learn Irish traditional music. My interviewees sometimes used
technology to purposefully learn new repertoire and techniques, and they were
also unconsciously influenced by listening to music via various forms of media.
My research indicates that using notation and audio recordings is a commonplace
learning experience, while learning on the internet is less so. I suggest that the
affect technology has on musical enculturation depends on the type and
frequency of learning practices experienced by the individual learner. My field
research suggests that the use of technology is a significant and widespread
practice within contemporary Irish traditional music culture. Due to this
pervasiveness, investigations of learning or enculturation processes should
explore how musicians use technology. As McCarthy suggests, it behoves us to
look closely at the media used to pass on music at any given time and how their
presence transformed the content and process of transmission (1999:26).
Although using technology is a common learning experience, many of my
interviewees still prefer learning directly from other musicians.10 Several
See also Cranitch (2006:31), Hamilton (1978:37), and Veblen (1991:174)
However, Francis Ward is currently conducting PhD research at the University of Limerick on
the Effect of New Technologies on the Transmission of Irish Traditional Music.
10
(Liz Doherty, Hammy Hamilton, Geraldine OCallaghan, Connie OConnell, Seamus Sands,
interviews). Veblen also found that although everyone used equipment, few commentators
8
237
Liz Doherty suggests that when learners rely on media, and do not have personal
contact with other musicians (particularly older, more experienced musicians),
they can miss out on a key piece of information:
People are gaining access to the music through different
recordings or through the internet or whatever and
maybe not having that personal contact. Theyre not
sitting down with an older person who you just know
through that one experience. And you realize from that
personal contact that this is something you cant learn
overnight. Thats where the key piece of information is
being lost (Doherty, interview).
While repertoire and style is easily transmitted via media, learners do not
always gain an understanding of the social context or history of Irish traditional
music through media sources. While some interviewees have concerns over the
effectiveness of some forms of technology, all twenty describe numerous
experiences using forms of technology to learn and listen to Irish traditional
music.
Learning directly from older traditional musicians is often considered the
most authentic and effective mode of transmission. Hamilton suggests that
musicians who learn in the oral tradition, and not from books or records are
usually held in high esteem (1978:43). However, OShea argues that while Irish
traditional musicians often value authentic face-to-face interactions, personal
recording devices and internet technology play an equally significant role in the
formation of 'Irish' identities and understandings of Irish traditional music
seemed comfortable with the idea of it. Noel Hill, professional musician, described modern
students acquiring music through books or the hi-fi system of the front living room without
full realization of where the music comes from or the context in which it was played
(1991:156).
238
(2005:3). While this dissertation does not aim to explore the authenticity of
learning practices, this issue emerged during my fieldwork. The interview data
reveals mixed opinions about the authenticity and effectiveness of using
technology to learn Irish traditional music. While interviewees did not commonly
describe using technology to listen and learn as untraditional or inauthentic
experiences, many prefer and value learning in live settings.
Compared to other aspects of culture, such as religious practices,
technology changes rapidly (Nettl 2005:276). A review of music education
articles reveals how quickly new technologies become outdated. Writing in 2002,
Webster predicted that DVD technology would be a groundbreaking educational
resource and he discussed how computers were finally becoming affordable at
only $1,000 (2002:43). These innovations seem like ancient history; laptops are
now available for as little as $300 in the United States. Considering this rate of
change, research in this chapter is sure to become out-dated within one or two
years. This is especially true of the discussion on emerging technologies, such as
iPhone Apps.11Apple, along with countless other companies, constantly launch
new generations of gadgets, making old devices obsolete. While this research
may quickly become outdated, it provides a unique snapshot of how traditional
musicians used technology in the late-20th and early-21st centuries.
Written Sources
This section explores the diverse ways traditional musicians use written sources
during the learning and enculturation process. Although all twenty interviewees
primarily learned aurally, the majority also had multiple experiences using
written sources, including ABC and staff notation, traditional music collections,
and instrumental tutors. While some interviewees experiences were brief and
casual, others describe frequent and meaningful experiences using written
sources. Consequently, the role written sources play in the enculturation of
traditional musicians is complex, and viewing the learning of Irish traditional
music as an entirely aural process does not address these complexities. The
influence of written sources on musical development depends on how, why and
11
While many Irish traditional music scholars comment on written sources and phonography,
very few have yet to discuss new emerging technologies. Although this chapter aims to
address this gap in the literature, more research is needed in the future.
239
how frequently the learner used these resources. In this section, I explore how
and why these sources are often used, and how this affects music enculturation.
Print technology is an appropriate place to begin our discussion.12
Bohlman states that printing is the first technological media to influence folk
music (1988:65), and Ong considers it one of the first technological innovations
to affect human consciousness (1982:82). Printed collections of Irish traditional
music emerge in the early 18th century, but did not become widely used by
traditional musicians until the 1920s (Vallely 1999:258). Irish traditional music is
primarily transmitted aurally, both historically and currently. Indeed, aural
learning is a defining characteristic of Irish traditional music.13 Due to the
significance of aurality within Irish traditional music culture, perhaps it is easy to
overlook the role written sources can play in the learning and enculturation
process. However, Kearney suggests that transcription and notation perform an
increasingly prominent role in the transmission and dissemination of Irish
traditional music (2009:194-5). Cranitch also argues that written sources have
played an important part in the transmission of the Irish tradition, although the
perception among many players may well be to the contrary (2006:200).
Cranitch calls for a more nuanced and multi-dimensional view of the role of
written sources within Irish traditional music (2006:197).
It is misleading to suggest that older generations of Irish traditional
musicians learned only through aural transmission. Many traditional musicians in
the past have engaged with and learned from written sources, including notation
and collections.14 Breathnach argues that the mode of visual transmission has a
long history (1986:2) and that literacy among traditional players, in Ireland at
any rate, is, and always has been, much greater than many suppose (1996:123).
Some of my interviewees also suggest that older generations of traditional
musicians used notation. James Duggan states that a lot of older players learned
In his study of the role of commercial recordings in the development of Irish traditional music,
Hamilton also begins with a discussion of written sources (Hamilton 1996).
13
Several scholars definition of Irish traditional music includes a statement that it is an aurally
transmitted form of music. OConnor suggests that There are several definitions of the term
traditional music, all of which bear connotations of oral transmission (2001:3). For
examples see (Breathnach 1986: 1; Foy 1999:49; Glackin 1992:34; Hast and Scott 2004:16;
Canainn 1993:1; hAllmhurin 2008:8; Riada 1982:19).
14
For instance, Pdraig OKeeffe learned tunes from books and other sources (Cranitch
2006:154). Mac Aoidh also states how Tarlach Mac Suibhne (1818-1916), An Pobaire Mr,
possessed a copy of OFarrells Collection of National Music for Union Pipes and
professed great respect for the music contained in it (1994:41). For more examples see also
(Doherty 2005:12; OConnor 2001:66; Vallely, Piggott, and Nutan 1998:54).
12
240
by ear, but equally there was an awful lot of them that could read music. We often
tend to think that they couldn't read music I guess it varied. Different people
had different ways. Some people didn't learn by ear (Duggan, interview). Martin
Hayes also suggests he knew many older musicians who were able to read music
well:
The vast majority of it was learned by ear, by listening
originally, and that is how I learned. But, having said
that now, plenty of the musicians I knew, and the older
musicians in particular, actually were good readers of
music too (Hayes, interview).
The interview data suggests that the use of written sources plays a role in
the learning process, but often an ancillary role. For instance, the interviewees
place more of an emphasis on learning in sessions, summer schools, extracurricular tuition, family, and by listening and playing along to commercial
recordings. While my interviewees value and frequently participate in face-toface and aural learning practices, the majority of the participants also describe
several learning experiences using written sources. Some interviewees use
written sources frequently and believed that this experience provided them with a
deeper understanding of Irish traditional music. Other interviewees only used
these resources casually in order to further investigate repertoire they learned
aurally. According to my field research traditional musicians tend to use written
sources in conjunction with listening and other aural learning practices. This
correlates with Waldron and Veblens finding that amateur adult traditional
musicians use notation in support of some type of aural strategy, for example,
lilting or picking up a tune from a CD (2009:69).
I begin the discussion by exploring the interviewees experiences using
notation during weekly tuition, workshops, and at home as a memory and
practice aid. Following this, I discuss other commonly used written sources,
including collections of Irish traditional music and instrumental tutors. I conclude
with a discussion of some concerns regarding how written sources are used
during learning and enculturation processes.
Notation
While all interviewees had some experience using notation, their experiences
differ significantly in terms of frequency, and also in how these sources were
241
242
Image 9: Example of staff and ABC notation from the CC tune book, Seinn
Port 112 Great Session Tunes, The Miller of Glanmire (Kearney n.d.:13)
243
Liz adds that Dinnys pupils generally copied the tunes off the board in order to
practice at home (Doherty, interview). In Lizs experience, ABC notation
operated as both an instructional tool and memory aid.
Several of my interviewees progressed from using notation during the
early stages of the learning process, to primarily using aural learning sometime
during their teenage years. For instance, Aoife Granville states that she belongs to
a generation of musicians who commonly learned through ABC notation as
beginners. Aoife suggests that aural learning can be difficult for many novices,
and using ABC notation can be a practical way to ease beginners into playing and
learning Irish traditional music:
Time wise, learning by ear wasn't really practical I
suppose. We didn't learn by ear until we started going to
workshops in the summer Most of the people I know
learned from the ABC system... I think that's very
normal for my generation anyway. There's kind of an
idea maybe that everyone here learns by ear, but we
don't It gets easier for teenagers, but starting off it's
too difficult and you don't want to scare them or put
them under too much pressure (Granville, interview).
Aural learning can be intimidating, and ABC notation can act as a scaffold until
young traditional musicians begin to learn aurally with more confidence. Liz
Doherty also began to learn aurally during adolescence. She states, I didnt really
start to learn by ear, which some people would argue is the traditional way to
learn, until I was sixteen or seventeen. But that is my first preference now, to
learn by ear (Doherty, interview). Geraldine OCallaghan also learned her first
tunes via notation, but eventually became more involved with aural learning in
her teens:
My own experience with learning, I suppose, a lot of it
was notation-based initially and as I progressed as a
musician I depended more and more on my ear. I would
hazard a guess that at least of my repertoire was
learned by ear, opposed to directly from notation
(OCallaghan, interview).
244
While ABC notation provides a simple and convenient way to signify the
pitches of melodies, other aspects of traditional music style, such as rhythmic
nuances and ornamentations, are not well represented. As Waldron suggests, all
current forms of notation can only indicate the notes to be played; it cannot
communicate rhythmic subtleties or stylistic elements (2006b:6-7).
Consequently, learners who use notation generally developed and hone their
rhythmic abilities and stylistic nuances aurally. In such cases, using ABC notation
to recall the melody of a tune can be considered both a visual and an aural
learning practice. Liz Doherty feels that learning by the letters during weekly
tuition was a type of aural learning. Liz states:
Even though we were learning by the letters we were
actually learning by ear. It was just kind of a support
along the way, we were learning the notes as a guide,
but Dinny was playing it, and we were playing it back
and we were all making the sounds together (Doherty,
interview).
Helen Gubbins suggests that while her teacher taught tunes by writing ABC
notation on the chalkboard, she primarily picked up the tunes from hearing it
played in the class:
16
For further discussion of notation as a memory aid see (Breathnach 1986:8; Cranitch 2006:199;
Hast and Scott 2004:61;Keegan 1996; Vallely 1999:258; Veblen 1991).
245
In this way, in many traditional music classes and workshops, notation is often
used alongside and in conjunction with listening and aural learning.
Throughout my fieldwork, I observed a combination of aural and visual
learning practices in summer schools, festival workshops, and weekly Comhaltas
classes. At Cruinni na bhFliit, some teachers taught entirely aurally, while
others taught aurally and then wrote ABC notation on a blackboard for students to
copy. In workshops aimed at teenagers and adult learners, I observed many tutors
teaching tunes aurally, but providing notation as a memory aid. Teachers at
Cruinni na bhFliit and the Douglas CC emphasize the importance of listening
and learning by ear. Teachers encourage students to bring along audio recording
devices, and many students record their teachers demonstrating repertoire slowly
in order to listen and play along to at home. Many students leave their Irish
traditional music classes and workshops with both aural (audio recordings) and
visual aids (notation), and can continue to practice at home using this
combination of resources.
Instead of using notation as an instructional tool or memory aid, some
interviewees use notation and written sources as a way to research tunes they
already have learned aurally. Connie OConnell explains how he uses notation to
research his established repertoire, not to learn new repertoire:
I have an awful lot of books and I delve into them and
keep looking for different sources and different versions
of the tune. I dont learn the tune, Id know the tune. Id
only be looking for something I already knew and I
wanted to learn more about. Thats the main use Id
make out of notation I would use it for research, not
learning purposes; for research and personal
knowledge... There might be controversy over the
middle of a tune, and Id would see what a person has
written (OConnell, interview).
This is another example of how the use of notation is often used in conjunction
with aural learning practices within the Irish traditional music community.
Collections
Music collections begin to influence Irish traditional music culture beginning in
1726 with the publication of Neales A Collection of the Most Celebrated Irish
Tunes (Breathnach 1996:103; hAllmhurin 2008:54). The first collection of
Irish traditional music to be collected directly from traditional musicians,
however, was Buntings collection of Ancient Irish Music, published in 1796
(Breathnach 1996:104).17 Buntings work acted as a model for other collectors of
Irish traditional music, including Petrie, Joyce, and Goodman. However,
collectors prior to the 20th century, such as Bunting and Petrie, were not
traditional musicians; Bunting and Petries collections were intended for middleclass musicians and antiquarians interested in Irish melodies (OConnor
2001:65).18 As hAllmhurin suggests, Buntings work was transcribed for ears
that were more acquainted with the music of Handel and Mozart than the harp
compositions of Gaelic Ireland (2008:73). It was not until the early 20th century,
with the publication of ONeills collection, that notation begins to affect the
learning practices of Irish traditional musicians ( Canainn 1993:9).
For some traditional musicians, written collections of traditional music
are important sources of inspiration and knowledge. However, some traditional
musicians rarely, if ever, learn from or use these sources. Therefore, the influence
collections can have on musical development and enculturation depends on if the
learner has access to and an interest in using these sources. Connie OConnell is
one of my participants who values music collections. He suggests that traditional
For information on Bunting see (Carolan 1997:55; Cranitch 2006:198; Hamilton 1996:58-9;
Hast and Scott 2004:24; Mac Aoidh 1994:83; McCarthy 1999:40; C. Moloney 1999:46-48;
hAllmhurin 2008; Williams 2010).
18
Since my aim is to focus on my interviewees learning experiences, I only briefly discuss the
history of Irish traditional music collections here. For a history of traditional music collections
see (Breathnach 1986, 1996; Cranitch 2006:198; Hamilton 1996:53-72; Hast and Scott 2004;
Kearney 2009:194-208; N Chonghaile 2010; OConnor 2001; hAllmhurin 2008).
17
247
musicians should be more conscientious about the history of their own music,
including the activities and works of famous Irish traditional music collectors:
People dont know enough about collectors in this
country. Theyre not putting enough emphasis on
collections, or collectors Francis ONeill and Goodman,
Breathnach, Petrie If you go into classical music,
everybody knows Mozart. Everyone knows the date he
was born, where he was born, how he lived, nearly what
he had for breakfast in the morning. Whereas traditional
musicians seem to have this idea that they just sit down
and play a tune, and if you ask them where it came
from, they havent a fecking clue (OConnell,
interview).
In Connies view, traditional music collections, and the lives of the collectors, are
noteworthy aspects of Irish traditional music history and culture. Only a couple of
interviewees suggested that tune collections are underappreciated by learners of
Irish traditional music. In addition to Connie, Seamus Sands also commented that
some traditional musicians neglect written sources of Irish traditional music, but
Seamus values such resources (Sands, interview).
Francis ONeills collection, The Dance Music of Ireland: O'Neill's 1001
(ONeill 1907), is referred to as the most important (Hast and Scott 2004:61),
most notable (Mac Aoidh 1994:91), and the authoritative text for players
(O'Shea 2005:53).19 ONeills remains the most commonly used written
collection of Irish traditional music. The collection is so influential that many
traditional musicians and commentators referred to it simply as the book
(McNamara and Woods 1997:31; OConnor 2001:65) or the bible (Breathnach
1996:117; Canainn 1996:67). As Chicagos Chief of Police, ONeill was in a
unique position to collect hundreds of dance tunes from the influx of Irish
musicians who immigrated to the city at the turn of the century.20 ONeill, a
traditional flute player originally from West Cork, amassed the largest printed
collection of Irish dance music in history. ONeills first collection (1903)
contains 1,850 pieces, including 625 airs, 74 tunes attributed to Carolan, 50
marches, and the stupendous total of 1,100 dance tunes Bunting's three
volumes did not contain a dozen dance tunes, and the complete Petrie collection
less than 300 (Breathnach 1996:117). While the collection is respected for the
19
20
248
sheer amount of repertoire, the value of ONeills collection lies in its relevance
amongst Irish traditional musicians. Vallely states it was the first collection to be
actually done by one of the people, for the people, so to speak (2004b:27), and
ONeills was the first collection to significantly impact traditional musicians
learning practices.
Image 10: Cover of The Dance Music of Ireland: ONeills 1001
249
OConnor also states that the melody is only a framework, a skeleton that gets its flesh and
character from the musicians who play it. This will be different each time it is played
(2001:8). See also (Waldron 2009a:60; Veblen 1991:237).
250
Helen Gubbins also mentioned that she enjoys playing Ed Reavy tunes, and
luckily they are all written down. Its a really accessible book, so I like flipping
through it (Gubbins, interview). Collections of compositions by particular Irish
traditional musicians, such as Junior Crehan (Crotty n.d), Ed Reavy (1996), and
Brendan Tonra (Tonra and Kisiel 2000), have become popular in recent decades.
Collections of session tunes, such as 100 Essential Irish Session Tunes
(Mallinson 1995b), have also recently become popular.22 As mentioned in
Chapter 3, CC has published three volumes of session tune books, Foinn
Seisin. These books organize tunes into sets, which can be useful for beginners
who hope to join their local session. Kearney suggests that these session tune
books have largely replaced older collections, such as ONeills (1907) and
Breathnachs (1963, 1976) (Kearney 2009:197).
Even though many traditional musicians may not use collections, these
sources can still play a subtle role during the learning process. It would be
unusual to meet a traditional musician who has never heard of ONeills
collection. Even if a traditional musician does not use collections, these written
sources are commonly discussed at sessions and other musical events. In this
way, being aware of the existence of collections is part of gaining a basic
understanding of Irish traditional music history and culture. Additionally,
traditional music collections can influence musicians who only learn aurally.
Several scholars argue that traditional musicians often learn repertoire aurally
from other musicians who have acquired repertoire from written collections
(Carolan 1997:56-7; Cranitch 2006:201; Vallely 2008:120).
Instrumental Tutors
Instrumental tutors published by traditional music teachers and performers are
now popular learning resources in traditional music circles. While ABC and staff
notation can be used as an instructional tool or memory aid, instrumental tutors
fulfil a different function. By explicitly addressing elements of style from
different perspectives, instrumental tutors can help learners to understand
instrumental techniques and approaches to style. For instance, the Irish Fiddle
22
For more examples of session tune collections, see (Cranitch 2000; Kearney n.d.; Mallinson
1995a, 1997).
251
Book (Cranitch 2001) and Timber: The Flute Tutor (Vallely 1987) address
specific techniques, style, and ornamentations on the fiddle and flute,
respectively. Many instrumental tutors also include a selection of tunes, so
learners can practice techniques in the context of a particular tune. Irish
traditional music tutor books are relatively new learning sources, and for this
reason, they begin to influence learning practices after the 1970s. Hammy
Hamilton learned the flute before these resources were available, and therefore
describes having to rely on a network of traditional musicians in order to learn
technique and aspects of style:
There are a lot of tutors now-a-days where you can see
rolls, and its written down and explained. But in my
day there wasnt. I must have asked other players at
some stage, like How are you doing a roll? Because I
think the initial thing is most people mistake a roll for a
bit of vibrato or something (Hamilton, interview).
I suggest that tutors can be particularly helpful resources for learners who may be
shy to ask experienced players for advice, or for learners who may not live near
other traditional musicians. As Hammy suggests, initially, it may be difficult to
understand and learn rolls and other ornamentations by ear. Some guidance is
useful, and instrumental tutors aim to guide learners to develop an understanding
and a technical proficiency of stylistic nuances.
A few of my interviewees have published their own instrumental tutors,
and they include audio or video recordings within the book.23 Mary Bergin
suggests that some learners find the rhythm and pulse of Irish traditional music
elusive. She also suggests that the lift can only be felt and achieved through
listening (Bergin, interview). For this reason, Mary feels it is essential that her tin
whistle tutor includes an audio CD. This is a popular trend, as instrumental tutors
commonly include aural examples alongside written descriptions of techniques
and notation. In his fiddle tutor, Matt Cranitch writes about his included CD in
this way:
This CD is an invaluable aid to learning, because you
can hear how the music and ornamentation should
sound. Furthermore, playing along with the recording
will help with rhythm and intonation (2001:6).
See (Cranitch 2001, Hamilton 1990, Grda 2011). Mary Bergin also has a tutor in press.
252
Some Concerns
In this section, I explore some of the challenges associated with learning Irish
traditional music using written sources. Although the majority of interviewees
used written sources at some stage during the learning process, many have
concerns about learners who rely too much on visual aids. Many interviewees
believe that aural learning is a more practical or effective learning strategy. While
most of my interviewees state that they can read notation, many choose not to
depend on written sources. While Toms Canainn is a proficient reader, he
states:
I never used notation as a learning device a lot. Ok, if I
wanted to learn a tune and somebody scribbled it out, I
could read it, but in general I wouldn't be looking
toward notation for picking up stuff
( Canainn, interview).
While Connie uses written sources, he emphasizes that his entire repertoire is
24
See also Matts research on Pdraig OKeeffes teaching methodologies (Cranitch 2006).
253
25
Similarly, Campbell argues that [n]o musical notation has yet been capable of expressing in a
visual way precisely the way the music should sound (1991:106). See also (Berliner
1994:302; Green 2008:7).
254
Liz also suggests that notation should not be taken literally, as melodies are
approximations which need to be creatively interpreted by musicians. She states
that the notes that are written arent always the notes that are played anyway, and
you certainly wouldnt play it that way every time (interview). My interviewees
value the ability to creatively interpret melodies, and this interpretation is usually
accomplished through personal experimentation and by listening to other
musicians versions and interpretations. When novices use notation prescriptively
and play the notation without adding or interpreting the melody, little is being
accomplished to progress their musical creativity.
Other interviewees suggest that written sources do not help learners to
develop a sense of intonation, feeling, or style. Lisa OSullivan states that
intonation, feeling and phrasing are learned better aurally than visually, and she
believes that learning by ear is far more important and a better way to learn,
because you lose a lot of feeling through just learning by notation (O'Sullivan,
interview). Traditional musicians often learn intonation tacitly through listening
and experimentation. During tuition, workshops, and other learning contexts,
teachers and mentors generally do not instruct students how to play in tune.
Michael OSullivan also states that there is no doubt you would pick up the style
of your teacher if you were taught by ear. If youre taught by notes, it's diluted
then... Its very hard to get the feeling of the tune by just the notes (OSullivan,
interview). From many interviewees viewpoints, aural learning allows traditional
musicians to simultaneously absorb and imitate intonation, rhythm, melody,
technique, and other stylistic inflections.
Interviewees also suggest that written sources do not readily transmit or
represent the rhythm, pulse, or the emphasis of Irish traditional music. Mary
Bergin suggests that staff notation is particularly problematic in that it does not
accurately reflect the internal rhythm of Irish traditional music. She explains:
Traditional music is not played as it is written in staff
notation at all. It actually has no bearing on the internal
rhythm anyway. I find that if you use staff notation,
especially for jigs, its just even and not representative
of the true rhythm. So I just use the ABC notation If
youre a staff reader, youre going to interpret the notes
with the same beat all the time, so I try to get people
away from that and give them a new format (Bergin,
interview).
Mary feels that by providing pupils ABC rather than staff notation, they are more
255
likely to interpret the rhythm in the traditional way. One of the reasons Mary
gives for this suggestion is that there is a risk that when reading staff notation,
learners will interpret and play Irish tunes using a classical sense of pulse and
style (Bergin, interview). As John Reid suggests, some readers of staff notation
may play Irish melodies classically because they play the rhythm with equal
stress and duration as it is notated.
If you were to look at it and read off the notes, and
never heard it before, there's a danger that it will be
played classical, because every crotchet or quaver is
given a certain length. It's not going to sound the same.
It's all down to pure listening (Reid, interview).26
Learners with experience playing classical music may feel comfortable learning
through staff notation. However, learners who use staff notation prescriptively
may struggle to play with the proper rhythmic inflection.
Furthermore, several interviewees indicate that they often find it difficult
to remember repertoire they have acquired through written sources. For instance,
while Niall Vallely enjoys flipping through ONeills 1001 and Ceol Rince na
hireann, he feels that it is challenging to memorize tunes through notation. Niall
compares this to aural methods and suggests that If you learn it from a tape,
youd have it in your head straight away (Vallely, interview). Additionally, while
Hammy Hamilton is able to read staff notation, he feels that he easily forgets
tunes learned via notation:
I was always able to read music. When I started getting
involved in traditional music, unlike lots of people,
immediately all the written collections were available to
me as a source. But I always found tunes that I learned
from music didnt stay in my head. Youd have it for a
while, but then forget it very quickly (Hamilton,
interview).
26
Within the literature, Breathnach also comments on how staff notation only provides visually
equal quavers, which does not display the subtle deviation which give life and colour to the
performance of a good player. Only by constantly listening can this rhythmic quality be
attained (1986:8-9).
256
Within Irish traditional music culture, written sources are not used in
performance contexts, and are used exclusively during practice or informal
music-making in private. In this way, learners who are dependent on written
sources may find it difficult to fit into performance contexts where other
participants are playing and learning aurally. For instance, they may feel
uncomfortable in a session without notation as a crutch, and will more than likely
feel out of place if they are the only musician to bring notated music into the
session circle. In order to fully participate in musical activities within the
traditional music community, it is in learners best interest to play and lean by ear,
and to commit tunes to memory.
The limitations and advantages of using written sources during the
learning process are complex and numerous. As mentioned earlier, Seamus Sands
experienced a combination of aural and visual learning practices while learning
fiddle. As a teenager, he enjoyed participating in sessions, listening to
commercial recordings, and exploring tunes in ONeills 1001. While Seamus
enjoyed using written sources during the learning processes, he values learning
directly from other traditional musicians much more. He suggests that written
sources cannot replace or compare to playing and socializing with other
traditional musicians. Seamus discusses an experience during his life that he
found educationally influential:
I played for a time with Paddy Mills and I would
remember him and the nice funny things associated with
him. To me, that's much more important than the notes
that you can see in a book. Anybody with a bit of
classical training can pick up reels, or Breandn
Breathnachs Ceol na hireann. There are thousands of
tunes and you can play through them all, but that's only
half of the picture (Sands, interview).
Seamus emphasizes that learning the pitches of a tune is merely the beginning of
the learning process.
Since written sources are often used in private settings, one might assume
that these resources do not involve social interactions. However, there are
numerous social implications to consider when discussing the role of written
sources in learning and enculturation processes. For instance, a group of friends
may exchange notation in order to learn similar repertoire or rehearse in a cil
band together. Parents also may pass on ONeills 1001 or other written sources to
their children. Additionally, Cranitch suggests that Pdraig OKeeffes
257
manuscripts were so important to some musicians in the Sliabh Luachra area that
learning a tunes from Pdraigs notated manuscripts, even long after his death
was still considered to be learning from him (Cranitch 2006:188). In this way,
written sources can involve concrete social connections and memories, and play a
role in musical enculturation.
In this section, I have explored the ways traditional musicians use and
experience written sources during the learning process. My research suggests that
traditional musicians use written sources in diverse ways. The frequency at which
these resources are used also depends primarily on the stage of the learning
process and learners personal interest in written sources. Because the types of
written sources serve different functions, written sources can affect learning
processes in distinct ways. According to my interviewees, many traditional music
teachers use ABC notation as an instructional tool in order to gradually introduce
novices to music-making and aural learning practices. Notation is also commonly
used as a memory aid. More experienced traditional musicians tend to use written
collections as a way of researching repertoire they have acquired aurally. Several
of my interviewees use collections to check their versions, seek out different
versions, or explore new repertoire they wish to learn. I also discussed how
instrumental tutors can help learners to understand, practice, and develop
instrumental techniques and styles.
I suggest that the effect written sources have on musical enculturation
partly depends on the individuals learning style. Germli defines an individuals
learning style as the way that person begins to process, internalize, and
concentrate on new material (1996:24). Some learners naturally gravitate
towards visual learning, and for such learners, written sources can aid them until
they feel comfortable learning Irish traditional music aurally. Helen Gubbins
suggests it is important for traditional music teachers to accommodate people
with different learning styles:
Certain people learn more visually than aurally. I guess
you always want to work on the aural thing, but at the
end of the day, if somebody really comes on in leaps
and bounds because they have the notes to take home
with them, why would you restrict that at all? I really try
to push the aural thing, but I try and just respect
peoples knowledge of how they learn best, and give
them the notes, especially when theyre beginning. And
then at measured intervals I take away the crutches
(Gubbins, interview).
258
While Helen values aural learning and tries to encourage her students to listen as
much as possible, she suggests that a combination of visual and aural learning
practices can provide meaningful educational experiences particularly to visual
learners.
Whether or not written sources are educationally effective also depends
on how well these sources are used. The use of notation does not inherently stunt
a learners ability to creatively interpret repertoire. I have argued that when
learners depend on and use notation prescriptively, their ability to creatively
interpret tunes may languish. However, the development of creativity is impeded
by the learners incorrect approach and use of the sources; creativity is not
impeded by the written sources themselves. This is similar to Lords suggestion
that song books spoil the oral character of the tradition only when the singer
believes that they are the way in which the song should be presentedthey can
spoil a tradition only when the singers themselves have already been spoiled by a
concept of a fixed text (2000:79). My interviewees used notation in conjunction
with listening practices, which is a more effective use of written sources. Within
the Irish traditional music community, visual and aural learning are often
interconnected processes, which complement, rather than oppose, one another.
When written sources are frequently and effectively used by musicians,
such resources can play a significant role in learning and enculturation processes.
However, not every traditional musician uses these sources, and none of my
interviewees suggested that using written sources is an important experience one
needs to go through in order to become a traditional musician. Musical
enculturation can, and often does occur, without a learner using written sources.
Blind musicians, for instance, of which there are many notable examples
throughout Irish history, have developed their musicality entirely aurally.
However, many young learners are introduced to their first Irish tunes via ABC
notation, and in adulthood, traditional musicians commonly discuss written
sources in sessions, workshops, festivals and everyday discourse. While written
sources are commonly used, they represent a somewhat peripheral learning
practice when compared to aural learning, which remains the primary mode of
transmission. This is evident, in particularly, since my interviewees often use
written sources as a mnemonic device or as a tool to research aural versions of
tunes. While more peripheral than aural learning, written sources are a part of the
community of practice and play a role in many musicians learning experiences.
259
Phonographic Technology
As far back as 1878, Tomas Edison recognized the implications phonographic
technology had for the field of music and education (Chanan 1995:2-3), and ever
since, scholars have examined and debated such educational implications. Malm
suggests:
The single technological development that has most
influenced the field of music is the invention of sound
recording in 1877. For the first time people had the
ability to preserve, transport and reproduce at a specific
time and place sound that were originally produced
elsewhere (1992:350).
The purpose of this section is to explore the ways traditional musicians use
various forms of phonographic technology and how this affects the enculturation
process. I propose that listening to audio recordings is a social practice which is
integral to the musical enculturation of Irish traditional musicians.
In this dissertation, the term phonography refers to the phenomenon of
sound recording, and phonographic technology refers to a variety of artefacts,
including commercial and non-commercial audio recordings which are played
and listened to by using radio, internet, vinyl record, cassette tape, CD, Mp3
players, or mobile phones. Works of phonography can also be thought of as
sound-constructs created by the use of recording machinery (Brown 2000:361).
Throughout this section, I explore the role commercial and non-commercial
recordings plays in learning and enculturation processes. Commercial recordings
are sound recordings of traditional music performances which are produced either
professionally or semi-professionally, by record companies or independently, for
purposes of commercial distribution. Many commercial recordings of Irish
traditional music are what Turino refers to as high fidelity works, although
many traditional groups and artists also experiment with studio audio art
(2008).27 In addition to commercial recordings, Irish traditional musicians,
enthusiasts, and archivists commonly make their own sound recordings of Irish
traditional music, which I refer to as non-commercial recordings. In the past,
practitioners recorded sound by using portable tape recorders, but now, digital
27
High fidelity music refers to audio recordings which aim to represent live music performances.
Studio Audio Art is a recorded music that is patently a studio form with no suggestion or
expectation that it should or even could be performed live in real time (Turino 2008:78).
Studio audio art often features electronic music and sounds, and is considered a final musical
product.
260
Commercial Recordings
According to the interview data, commercial recordings are the most commonly
used type of phonographic technology by traditional musicians. In this section, I
begin with a discussion of the ways my interviewees acquired new repertoire by
listening and playing along to commercial recordings. Following this, I explore
how commercial recordings affect the learning of techniques and aspects of style.
I conclude by considering the role commercial recordings play during musical
enculturation.
Commercial recordings have significantly affected transmission practices
262
in Irish traditional music since the early 1920s.28 While the first Irish traditional
musician was recorded on cylinder in 1898 ( hAllmhurin 2008:105),
commercial recordings did not significantly influence learning practices until
after the War of Independence (1919-1921) when gramophones and radios
became common in Irish households ( hAllmhurin 2008:123). Commercial
recordings are currently listened to using many formats, including on the radio
and internet. While some argue that the non-commercial side of traditional musicmaking is the lifeblood, the cultural glue that holds the whole system together
(McCann 2001:91), commercialism, in many forms, plays a role in Irish
traditional music culture. As Sommers Smith argues, distrust of the commercial
must be balanced with the realization that commercial recordings are now by far
the most significant means by which the music is transmitted (2001:118). This
highlights the significant influence of commercial recordings, and suggests that
within Irish traditional music, commercialism and non-commercialism feature in
learning and enculturation processes.29
Nettl urges ethnomusicologists to see aural tradition in the context of the
many types of transmission available and suggests that Learning aurally from a
series of live performances is different from the repeated hearing of a recording
(2005:293). While Irish traditional music was once primarily transmitted aurally
in live settings, currently aural learning also occurs through listening to audio
recordings. In contrast to aural learning in live settings, commercial recordings
can be listened to repetitively and in the privacy of ones own home. I suggest
learning by listening to commercial recordings involves self-directed and
informal learning process; the learner controls what to listen to, how often, and
when to pause, rewind, or replay. Cormac De Frein suggests that commercial
recordings allow him to control the learning process, by proceeding at his own
pace:
I like doing my own thing... On a CD, youre on your
own. With your laptop, you can stop it, shift it forward
or back or just mess around yourself. I kind of prefer
that. If I want to get a few new tunes, I would prefer to
go off and get it on my own (De Frein, interview).
For a history of the role commercial recordings within traditional music, see (Hamilton 1996;
Kearney 2009; hAllmhurin 2008; Vallely 1999:403-4; Veblen 1991).
29
Hamilton explores commercialism in his study of the role of commercial recordings in the
development of Irish traditional music (1996), and his research significantly informs my
discussion here.
28
263
However, Hammy only learned the basic framework of the Blackthorn Stick by
listening to the recording. Hammy discusses how he played the tune for a friend
and realized that he did not acquire (let alone perceive) Seamus Enniss
ornamentations:
I played it [The Blackthorn Stick] for a friend of mine,
and he said Yeah, thats all very well, but youre not
playing any of the decorations. And I said,
Decorations? What decorations? Funny enough, he
wasnt a musician but he was a fan of music. In fairness
he could hear what I couldnt hear at that stage. I was
only playing the framework of the tune really
(Hamilton, interview).
interaction. In meeting his friend, Hammy discussed learning the tune from
Seamus Enniss recording. Upon playing it and receiving feedback, Hammy
discovers that he has not imitated the ornamentations of the tune. It is only after
this awareness that Hammy was able to listen out for the decorations. This was a
significant learning moment; learners can only imitate sounds which are heard
and understood (this understanding can and often does occurs tacitly). This
highlights two important points about learning aurally from commercial
recordings. First, listeners aural perceptions and previous experiences ultimately
determine what is learned; how a novice hears a tune can differ significantly to
how an experienced traditional musician might hear the same recording. Second,
some learning experiences using commercial recordings often involve related and
meaningful social interactions, as Hammys narrative illustrates. I further explore
the social implications of commercial recordings later on in this section.
Several interviewees also indicated that they unconsciously or
subconsciously learned tunes by repeatedly listening to commercial recordings.
For instance, when asked how she prefers to learn new tunes, Lisa OSullivan
states:
I try to listen as much as I can at home when Im just
paddling around doing housework Ive actually
started putting a to learn section in my iTunes playlist
which is full! Im up to F or G. So thats my new
technique. If you keep it on play, they really do enter. I
think I even learn them subconsciously (O'Sullivan,
interview).
Lisa suggests that she no longer sits down to consciously learn new tunes, but
instead acquires new repertoire by repeatedly listening to commercial recordings
until the point which the tunes seep into her consciousness. Once this occurs, Lisa
states that she can usually play these tunes in a session context relatively
accurately after the first or second repeat of the tune (OSullivan, interview). I
have also experienced this phenomenon on a number of occasions. During a
session in Sin , for example, I once became quite excited as another musician
started playing a jig from my favourite Dervish album, Spirit (2003). I had never
played or practiced the tune before, but knew the tunes structure and tacitly
knew that it was in the key of A minor. Caught up in the excitement of the session
and melody, I began to play quietly along to the tune and was pleasantly surprised
how well I could play the tune on the second repeat (Fieldnotes, 8 Feb 2011, Sin
265
experienced practitioners, which provides insight into the diverse approaches and
styles of other Irish traditional musicians. By listening to many commercial
recordings, learners make conscious or tacit aesthetic decisions about the type of
266
As another example, Niall Vallely suggests that in the 1970s, there was a lack of
solo concertina recordings, and therefore, he listened to an eclectic mix of other
instrumentalists and traditional groups. Niall believes by listening to a variety of
different styles of Irish traditional music, his own playing eventually kind of got
convalesced into some sort of style (Vallely, interview).
Through repeated listening learners begin to absorb melodies, timbre,
inflections, ornamentation, and variations. Sloboda discusses the importance of
repeated listening in music developmental processes:
repeated exposure increased the likelihood that
subjects would notice deep harmonic or thematic
similarities between segments, as opposed to surface
features, such as speed or tessitura (1985:153).
267
The standardization of repertoire and musical style is not a concern unique within
the Irish traditional music literature; several classical musicians and scholars also
have concerns about the ability of commercial recordings to standardize live
performance practice (Chanan 1995:118). Because commercial recordings
solidify performances and canonize particular pieces of repertoire, settings,
interpretations, and variations, they can play a significant role in the
standardization of musical practices.
A full literature review is not necessary for our purposes here. For further discussion see
(Breathnach 1996:92; Cranitch 2001:121, 2006:31; Hamilton 1978:37,1996:148; OConnor
2001:71-2; hAllmhurin 2008:129; Riada 1982:53; O'Shea 2005:70, 2008:27; Rapuano
2005; Sommers Smith 1998:141; Veblen 1991:174).
31
Hammy Hamilton suggests that the versions of tunes in ONeills book never became
standardized. What became far more standardized was the early 78s, because people could
hear them (Hamilton, interview).
30
268
Cranitch also states that Pdraig OKeeffe probably learned tunes from
recordings of some of the Sligo-style players he did not absorb the style of
playing of these musicians. Rather he learned the tunes, but in his own individual
way of playing them (2006:219). As another example from the literature, Mac
Aoidh also suggests that Donegal fiddle players absorbed Coleman and
Morrisons repertoire, but in almost every circumstance the tunes were
performed in the original Donegal style of the fiddler (1994:48).
This suggests that influential commercial recordings, such as Coleman
and Morrisons, do not simply standardize styles. While some practitioners may
imitate the techniques and style from iconic commercial recordings, many
traditional musicians interpret tunes on commercial recordings based on their
own individual styles. As McNamara and Woods state, A good enough player
could take Colemans style and adapt it to his own, adding a bit here or taking
away a bit there. A good player would never copy directly (1997:22). Of course,
during the early stages of musical development, learners are far more likely to
directly imitate commercial recordings. Indeed, this is often necessary during the
very initial stages of the learning process. However, several traditional musicians
and scholars urge learners to avoid imitation without creative interpretation or
introspection. In his fiddle tutor, Matt Cranitch suggests this to aspiring fiddle
players:
In developing your own style of playing, particularly
269
traditional musicians do. Hamilton discusses the role commercial recordings play
within the traditional music community:
Among Irish traditional musicians there is a strong
consciousness of the role of recording all musicians
have interacted with them on one or more of several
levels; as performer, a listener, a critic, as a source of
tunes and songs (1996:15).
32
271
frequent, repetitive, and convenient listening, and has the capacity to bring Irish
traditional music into peoples everyday lives. Geraldine OCallaghan describes
her meaningful experiences listening to Irish traditional music on a portable
device:
At varying stages youre going to be influenced by CDs
and music that you emulate.I remember getting a
copy of Martin Hayes first album, when I was about
fourteen and was pretty much addicted to it for about a
year. I use to climb a tree and sit up there listening to
it it would have actually been a tape and a Walkman
(OCallaghan, interview).
Berliner suggests that within jazz culture, recordings are considered formal educational tools,
which enable young musicians to apprentice unilaterally with artists they may never actually
meet (1994:58).
273
describes how he received a number of tapes of Irish traditional music from Ann
McAuliffe. James considers these influential resources:
I would have gotten a lot of tapes from Ann McAuliffe
when she was teaching. I remember a tape of Padraig
O'Keeffe on one side and Paddy Cronin on the other.
And I remember Ann McAuliffe did a tape as well I
can't remember what it was called, influential
musicians or something. I wore that out (Duggan,
interview).
Through his relationship with Ann, James was exposed to a number of seminal
recordings of Irish traditional music. James suggests that he often associates
recordings with memories of Ann (Duggan, interview). Although listening to
commercial recordings can be a solitary activity, this illustrates that this practice
is always socially situated within the musical culture.
Radio
Although my interview data suggests that learning directly from the radio is not
nearly as common as learning from CDs or Mp3s of commercial recording, radio
is a significantly distinct medium which warrants its own exploration here.
Learning by listening to the radio differs considerably to learning from
commercial albums. James Duggan describes how his teacher, Nicky McAuliffe,
learned from the radio:
Nick was saying he might hear a tune on the radio and
you would have to learn the first part of it and then it
might be played again a couple of weeks later and then
you'd get the second part of it. I guess recordings are
great because I'd listen to a tune five or six times before
I tried to play it when I was learning (Duggan,
interview).
Although James states that he often listens to Raido na Gaeltachta35, he does not
purposefully or consciously learn new repertoire or skills though listening and
playing along to Irish traditional music on radio programmes (Duggan,
interview). Recognizing the difficulty in learning from the radio, James believes
commercial recordings much more convenient learning resources.
Only a few of my interviewees indicate that they learned by listening to
35
Raido na Gaeltachta is RTs Irish language radio station, which transmits Irish traditional
music broadcasts more frequently than the other commercial stations, like RT Radio and
2FM.
274
the radio. For instance, Seamus Sands states that while in recent years he has not
acquired a large amount of new tunes, the tunes he does pick up are acquired
coincidentally from listening at traditional music sessions and to Raido na
Gaeltachta (Sands, interview). From a historical perspective, because Irish
traditional music can now be bought in music shops, downloaded on iTunes, and
streamed for free on the internet, learning directly from the radio is not nearly as
influential as in past generations.
Prior to television, the radio was the most popular and influential form of
media. The first broadcast transmitted on Irish national radio (2RN) was on 1
January 1923, and from the beginning, Irish traditional music had a strong
presence on air (Hamilton 1996:227). Since 1923, people have listened to live
performances, field recordings, and commercial recordings of Irish traditional
music on the radio. As with many new technologies, there were initial concerns
over the effects radio could have on society and culture. Chanan suggests that in
the 1920s, some feared that radio would stifle live music-making and amateur
performances, but by the 1930s, live music performances, music-making, and the
sale of sheet music were on the rise (1995:64). In Ireland, while there were some
concerns over standardization, musicians and scholars have generally
acknowledged radio as a positive medium in which to transmit and promote Irish
traditional music. For example, Kaul acknowledges the role radio played during
the revival of Irish traditional music, and suggests that in the 1950s, Irish
traditional music became difficult to come by Indeed, one of the only
remaining mediums for hearing traditional Irish dance music was in the form of a
few radio shows (2009:39).36 In his memoir, Canainn states that it would be
most unchivalrous not to mention the good that Radio na Gaeltachta has done,
not only for singing and music, but for the general moral of the people of every
gaeltacht area in Ireland (1996:65).
Earlier generations of traditional musicians relied on radio as a source of
entertainment, musical exposure, and education. Connie OConnell, for instance,
developed the desire to play fiddle, in part, by listening to the radio. Connie
explains his attraction to the fiddle:
We had a radio at the time. We didnt have electricity at
36
Veblen also asserts that, Given the impact radio has had historically, it seems likely that
contemporary broadcasting will shape future repertoire and styles (1991:154). Vallely argues
that national radio made the ground ready for organised music revival (2004b:12).
275
that stage, but we had a radio that was driven by two big
batteries. There was a big wet battery at the side, and
there was another dry battery. Youd have to take the
battery into town to get it charged. Its an awful
procedure, but that was the radio we had Seamus
Ennis had programmes on the radio at that stage. Ciarn
Mac Mathna was starting. There were a couple more
people collecting music at the time. It was probably
listening to those programs and my interested in music.
Maybe I heard fiddle music and liked it (OConnell,
interview).
With few active fiddle players in the locality, the radio was influential in Connies
introduction and enculturation into the fiddling tradition.
Although radio may seem like an obsolete medium, overall radio
listenership in Ireland remains relatively high. In a recent article in the Irish
Times, figures show that:
Ireland is still a nation of radio listeners. Some 85 per
cent of adults listened to radio every weekday... An
average adult listens to almost four hours of daytime
radio a day. Local radio continued to perform strongly,
reaching more than 40 per cent of the local adult
population daily in many areas (Healy, 4 May 2012).
276
Non-Commercial Recordings
During live music-making at informal get-togethers, sessions, festivals, concerts,
and workshops, traditional musicians commonly make their own recordings, and
can listen to these non-commercial recordings later on in order to learn or reexperience a musical event. The practice of recording live traditional music
events has been a common practice since the availability of portable tape
recorders in the 1960s, and continues today with the use of digital recorders and
mobile phones.37 Hamilton suggests that in sessions by the mid-1970s, it was not
uncommon to see the majority of musicians taping the musical event (1996:243).
During my observations in sessions, I noticed that musicians occasionally, but not
always, ask permission to record a session. Amongst close friends, it is not
uncommon to see a musician simply take out a mobile phone to record a tune
without words being exchanged. Acquaintances or visiting musicians often ask
the other session participants beforehand out of courtesy. OShea suggests that
learners are generally allowed and encouraged to record sessions since tape
recorders are generally considered essential to the learning process (2005:31)
and my fieldwork observations correspond to this trend.
Like all phonographic technology, listening to non-commercial recordings
inherently distances the sound and original social context. Cainann states:
The availability of cheap tape-recorders has meant that a
traditional players repertoire is no longer his own. His
music can now be carried away from a festival or a
private session to spread its influence in totally
unexpected quarters (1993:9).
However, I suggest that the distance between the social context and the sound
that non-commercial recordings creates is significantly different than the
disembodiment of commercial recordings, as discussed above (OShea
2005:72); when a person makes their own recordings, they were once physically
present at a live musical event. When that person listens to the recording at a later
time, they can re-experience past live events. They listen to the recorded music in
isolation, but this type of listening can involve meaningful recollections of
memories of previous socio-musical experiences.
Several of my interviewees made their own and frequently listened to
37
For a history of cassette technology see (Bradshaw 1999; Chanan 1995; Hamilton 1996; Malm
1992). During my fieldwork, I commonly observed traditional musicians recording sessions
using their mobile phones. Tape recorders are now relatively rare.
277
Raised in a musical household, Martin benefited from interactions with his family
members and other traditional musicians who were friends of the family. Martin
was able to repeatedly listen to live music-making which occurred in his home by
tape recording these moments.
My interviewees also commonly recorded live music-making at
sessions, concerts, gigs and, recitals. For instance, Helen Gubbins often recorded
live sessions and concerts, and to Helen, these tapes were not merely a record of
sound or a useful educational resource; the tapes represented a feeling or idea,
and reminded her of important social experiences she had at concerts, festivals,
and summer schools. Importantly, Helen describes listening to these tapes as the
38
(Seamus Sands, Lisa OSullivan, Aoife Granville, Cormac De Frein, Martin Hayes, Mick Daly,
Matt Cranitch, Liz Doherty, and Conal Grda, interviews).
278
first time she truly engaged and connected with Irish traditional music:
being able to go to Scoil igse and record concerts - I
always remember thinking, Wow, that was amazing,
and I have it here now on tape cassette and I can listen
to it over and over again all year. I just remember
working the whole year round on those precious
cassettes. I would listen to recordings of those concerts
over and over again. It wasnt just the particular tunes
that did it. It was just everything together expressed a
certain feeling and a certain idea. And I think maybe
that was the first time I really engaged or connected and
felt like Id been actually touched by that music. So
definitely from about age fifteen, recordings live
concerts and not wanting to ever stop listening to them;
Those are definitely the big influences (Gubbins,
interview).
Helen thoroughly enjoyed her time attending and recording Scoil igse classes
and concerts during the summer. When she listened to these non-commercial
recordings throughout the year, she was able to re-experience the socio-musical
moments she experienced in live settings. Her cassettes became precious to her,
and Helen suggests these listening experiences corresponded to a time when she
began to strongly identify with Irish traditional music. Helen engaged in a
multiplicity of learning experiences listening to recordings in private, attending
summer schools, and concerts and I suggest this multiplicity of experiences
contributed to Helens feeling of connectedness to Irish traditional music.
Many of my interviewees who learned in weekly classes often recorded
their teachers playing slowly in order to learn repertoire or aspects of style. Lisa
OSullivan suggests that she used a tape recorder during weekly music classes,
and listened to the tapes at home in order to make sense out of the ABC notation
distributed in class (OSullivan, interview). Traditional music teachers often
emphasize the importance of listening and encourage students to record tunes. In
many classes, notation and recordings are used in conjunction as a memory aid.
My fieldwork observations in weekly classes, summer school and festival
workshops suggest that more often than not, students record tunes taught in class.
However, whether or not students listen to these recordings outside of class is
another issue entirely.
Conal Grda suggests that recording and listening to ones own playing
is a useful learning practice. Because musicians often need to concentrate on their
playing, they can encounter difficulties when trying to objectively evaluate their
279
By recording and listening to his own playing, Conal was able to analyse his
performance, without relying on a teacher or adjudicators evaluation. Listening
to ones own playing on a recording allows for self-assessment and, therefore it
can encourage critical and independent musical thinking. This is an example of
how the disembodiment of recordings can present different, unique perspectives
to listeners.
Some interviewees primarily made and listened to non-commercial
recordings during the early stages of the learning process, but others continued
this practice relatively consistently throughout their lives. For Connie OConnell,
his tape recorder played a central role in learning and enculturation processes.
Because there were not many fiddle players in Connies locality in the 1960s,
Connie describes his learning experiences as very haphazard; just going around
with a tape-recorder and picking up what I could (OConnell, interview). Tape
recording was Connies primary mode of learning and listening for many years,
and without this experience he may not have developed into the musician he is
today. Connie details his learning experiences:
The way Id normally learn tunes was, I had a tape
recorder with two big wheels in it. And I probably sat
into sessions here or there, went to fleadh ceoils, went to
festivals when I was young. And I brought home my
tape recorder and put it going at home and just played
the tunes along Eventually, I didnt sit down and learn
a tune, just turn on the tape recorder or radio while I was
doing anything, reading, sitting at home, listen away,
going on in the background. After a while the tune
formed inside my head and I would pick up the fiddle
and play it. Which to me was not very stressful; it was a
pleasant way of doing it, like. And then Id play the
tune, and I might find at some part of the tune, theres
something wrong there. So, Id refer back to my tape
recorder and find out that little bit and sort it out. Id
have those tunes in my head until this day (OConnell,
interview).
280
Connies experiences with his tape recorder involved both purposeful and
unconscious learning processes. Connie often sat down with his tape recorder in
order to play along and purposefully learn new tunes. He also used his tapes as a
way to check if his version of a tune was correct. However, Connie also suggests
that he eventually absorbed new repertoire by listening to these tapes in a
distracted fashion. Similar to many popular musicians (Green 2002), Connie
considers the informal learning process of listening to recordings quite enjoyable.
Indeed, Connie often listened to the tapes for entertainment, rather than
educational, purposes.
Lastly, listening to non-commercial recordings can help learners to listen,
absorb, understand, and practice stylistic nuances, such as ornamentations and
variations. Niall Vallely discusses how he developed the ability to ornament and
vary tunes. A friend of the Vallely family, Paul Davis, made a tape of concertina
tunes for Niall, and Niall discusses why this tape was useful during the learning
process:
There was a friend of my parents named Paul Davis...
He made a tape of tunes for me. When I was listening to
the tape, I remember thinking what was brilliant about it
was; hed play the tunes slowly and then hed play them
up to speed with a bit of ornamentation. And I
remember thinking, How do you know where to put in
the rolls and the wee drones and octave things and bits
of ornamentations? I remember thinking this is very
impressive that you can throw them in here and there
and youd know that it just sounds right, rather than
someone having to tell ya. It was a couple years later
when I was actually doing it and I was thinking, how
did that happen? How did I get to the point where I
know how to put them in myself? (Vallely, interview).
By listening to Paul Daviss tape, Niall recognized and began to value the ability
to ornament a tune independently and creatively. Because Paul played the tunes
and ornaments slowly, Niall was also able to hear and imitate the nuances. As
Niall suggests, a number of years after receiving Pauls tape, he realized he had
gradually developed the ability to ornament tunes. Pauls tape was significantly
influential; however, I also propose that Niall developed his stylistic and
technical abilities by engaging in a multitude of musical experiences. Because
Nialls parents are active traditional musicians and teachers, Niall had numerous
and consistent opportunities to listen to, absorb, discuss, and participate in Irish
traditional music from a very young age. Through his familys interest and
281
Video Recordings
There are notable similarities between the processes of learning Irish traditional
music from audio recordings and learning from videos recordings; Users of audio
and video recordings can pause, rewind, and replay performances of Irish
traditional music, and learners can aurally learn and imitate new repertoire and
stylistic subtleties. As explored in this section, there are also clear distinctions
283
To put this into perspective, BBC Northern Ireland began broadcasting in 1953, and the
American Broadcasting Company first aired in 1948. Campbell suggests that television
influenced a young generation of jazz musicians from the late-1940s onwards (1991:181).
40
For a discussion, see (Hast and Scott 2004; Mac Aoidh 1994; McNamara and Woods 1997;
Tansey 2008).
39
284
Television has irrevocably changed Irish culture and musical practices. However,
the low ebb of music-making, from approximately the 1930s until the early
1950s, occurred decades before television entered Irish homes. The passing of the
Dance Halls Act of 1935 was far more detrimental to Irish traditional music than
television.41 On the contrary, hAllmhurin suggests that television played a role
during the 1960s revival of folk and traditional music:
Television had been a vital factor in sparking the ballad
boom in the 1960s. Nowhere was this more evident than
in the United States where the Clancy Brothers and
Tommy Makem had created a phenomenal audience for
Irish ballads (2008:151).
41
285
James did not sit in front of the television in order to consciously learn new tunes
or repertoire; instead, James taped and watched these videos because of his
general interest in Irish traditional music.
The lack of discourse about television and videos within my interview
data seems to indicate that video recordings play a limited role in musical
enculturation and learning. However, my fieldwork observations suggest that
many traditional musicians casually watch videos of Irish traditional music on
television. (And as I discuss later in this chapter, performances of Irish traditional
music are now commonly posted, viewed, and shared on the internet). As one
example, at a Cork Folk Festival concert, Conal Grda performed a set of
polkas, including the Church Street Polka. Conal introduced the tune and stated
that he learned it via a television programme featuring the playing of the Murphy
brothers (Fieldnotes, 1 October 2009).43 During my field research, I also
commonly discussed traditional music programmes, such as Come West Along the
Road and Geantra, with other musicians. These programmes are quite popular
within the traditional music community, and viewers of such programmes listen,
observe, and can gain historical and cultural information about Irish traditional
music. Although traditional musicians rarely sit down to watch television
programmes in order to learn, I propose that watching such videos can affect
unconscious, informal, and social learning processes. Viewers of traditional
music programmes can unconsciously absorb visual and aural cues of traditional
music performance and culture. As Canainn suggests, television showed the
traditional musician in action and certainly inspired learners to imitate him
(1993:9).
One of the major advantages of learning from video recordings is that
learners are able to observe and hear exceptional examples of traditional music
performances from the comfort and privacy of their homes. This combination of
aural and visual learning is only possible during live music-making and by
viewing videos of past music-making. Gracyk argues that audio recordings
deprive us of the opportunity to coordinate the sounds with the human gestures
in which they originate (1997:146), and Berliner suggest that the inability to see
performers and their instruments poses numerous other problems for aspiring
frequently broadcasts sean-ns dancing, which has helped to further heighten the popularity
of the style (2010:224).
43
The brothers, John and Pip Murphy, are well-known mouthorgan players from Co. Wexford.
286
Social and cultural norms, such as dress, mannerisms, and social interactions between
performers and audience members, can also be viewed.
287
suggests that video tutors impact the transmission of Irish traditional music,
although more so in countries outside of Ireland (1996:240-1). In recent years,
numerous tutorial videos have become available on websites, such as YouTube.
While some YouTube videos may be of questionable quality, video tutorials
available on the Online Academy of Irish Music (OAIM, www.oaim.ie) feature
qualified and reputable traditional musicians and teachers as online tutors. OAIM
also features live video chat capabilities a recent development with significant
implications for the future.
When compared to listening to audio recordings, I suggest that recorded
and live streaming videos on the internet allow learners to experience and
observe Irish traditional music in a more holistic way. Why, then, is listening to
audio recordings a far more common learning experience within the traditional
music community? This may be due to the convenience and practicality of
listening to audio recordings; we are able to listen to sound recordings while
driving, exercising, cooking, cleaning, and so forth. Watching videos of
traditional music performances, on the other hand, involves a more focused effort
on the part of the learner. In the past, television was the only medium in which to
view performance of Irish traditional music, and the learner needed to be sitting
in front of the television at the time of the original airing. However, viewing
videos of Irish traditional music has become much more convenient in recent
years. The advent of DVR technology also allows viewers to record, pause,
rewind, and replay television programmes of Irish traditional music. Streaming
videos on the internet has also increased the ease of accessing videos of Irish
traditional music. As explored further in the next section, these new innovations
have significant educational implications. Within Irish traditional music culture,
watching videos online is becoming a much more frequent, common, and
opportune learning activity.
In 1999, McCarthy suggested that the transmission of Irish traditional
music is no longer limited to classrooms and informal instructional settings.
Music is frequently learned through instructional materials such as recordings
and videotapes... In effect, such media of communication have transformed the
landscape of music learning (1999:172). This new landscape of music learning,
much of which still needs to be explored, is ever-changing. While I have outlined
some basic issues about the role video recordings play in the transmission of Irish
traditional music, more research is needed in the future. With the advent of
288
smartphones and tablets, learning by watching video recordings may one day
become as prevalent as learning aurally via audio recordings. Learners who view
videos of Irish traditional music are able to aurally learn tunes, and also benefit
from the ability to observe subtleties of instrumental technique, style, and
expression.
Internet
The internet has affected how people communicate, research, and access news,
information, and entertainment, and for this reason, internet usage has numerous
and significant educational, social, and cultural implications.45 As the internet
becomes a part of our social reality, ethnographers have increasingly explored
how people use the internet. Wilson and Peterson state that the internet is worthy
of the attention of anthropological researchers (2002:449), and Lysloff argues
that How and why people find meaning in their use of the Internet should be as
important as textual analysis for anthropologists to study (2003:234).46 The
internet is a relatively inexpensive musical and educational resource; once
learners have access to a computer and an internet connection, a plethora of
educational resources becomes available. Although distributed learning is both
accessible and affordable, unease about its quality persists, probably with
justification (Fletcher, Tobias and Wisher 2007:99). For this reason, Reily
suggests that perhaps more than any other area of information gathering, within
the Internet it is the user who must sift through a number of sites to determine
their reliability as legitimate sources of information (2003:187). The internet has
an almost unlimited amount of educational potential. However, in order for this
potential to become reality, the learner (and teachers) must navigate and
effectively use these sources. In this section, I explore the role of the internet
within the traditional music community, and suggest that using the internet is a
unique social practice.
Throughout much of the discussion I primarily draw on relevant literature
and my fieldwork observations. While I also discuss data gathered through
interviewing, my participants rarely discussed engaging with online sources in
While there are also legal, ethnical, economic, and political implications, in this dissertation, I
focus primarily on educational, socio-cultural, and musical issues.
46
See also (Nettl 2005:453).
45
289
order to learn Irish traditional music. The lack of information within the interview
data may lead to the conclusion that the internet does not play a significant role in
learning processes. However, because the participants of this study are all
experienced, adult traditional musicians, it is perhaps unsurprising that they did
not discuss online learning and listening practices in any detail. A study of
children and teenagers current learning experiences may result in an entirely
different perspective on the matter. My fieldwork observations also suggest that
contemporary traditional musicians are increasingly engaging in various online
activities, and as this trend continues, the internet may become a major learning
resource for a new generation of Irish traditional musicians.
In Chapter 2, I proposed that interacting with a network of practitioners is
an integral part of the enculturation process within Irish traditional music culture.
Because online activities are not based on face-to-face social and musical
interactions, some may consider using the internet as a less than ideal or even a
problematic learning method. While there are certainly challenges and limitations
to learning Irish traditional music online, using the internet involves an array of
complex socio-cultural issues which warrant exploration here. For instance,
traditional musicians who may not live near other practitioners can watch videos
of Irish traditional music and discuss relevant issues with other musicians on
discussion boards. I argue that websites that allow practitioners to interact with
one another can be a significantly influential social force within a community of
practice.
Within the literature and everyday discourse, online communications and
activities are occasionally viewed in opposition to real exchanges and
experiences in face-to-face settings. For instance, although Sommers Smith
recognizes that online forums can perform many of the functions of what has
been termed a musical community (2001:122), she also argues that novices need
personal contact, conversation, and encouragement that only an actual
community, "real sharing by real people in real space," can provide (2001:124).
Since 2001, many anthropologists and ethnomusicologists have subscribed to the
view that online communities are as "real" (or imagined) as those off line
(Lysloff 2003:236). Indeed, Wilson and Peterson suggest that the the distinction
of real and imagined or virtual community is not a useful one (2002:456-7).
Waldron also comments on this shift in conceptualization, suggesting that:
290
Within the Irish traditional music literature, no major study has focused
solely on the role the internet plays in the transmission or development of Irish
traditional music. However, there are a number of relevant articles on the subject,
which I reference frequently throughout this section. Several traditional music
scholars have commented and researched IRTRAD (https://listserv.heanet.ie/cgibin/wa?A0=IRTRAD-L) from a number of perspectives. Sommers Smith
describes IRTRAD as the premier discussion group for Irish traditional music on
the Internet (2001:121).48 In her ethnography of Irish traditional music sessions,
Rapuano uses a questionnaire on the IRTRAD website to develop more
formalised research questions (2005:26). Waldron and Veblen (2008) also explore
various internet mediums that IRTRAD members use for online learning
purposes. Kearns and Taylor suggest that the organisers of the Willie Clancy
Summer School use IRTRAD in order to monitor the attitudes and opinions of
the contemporary global Irish music community (2003:149).
As discussed in more detail later, Waldron explores the informal music
learning processes which take place within online communities (Waldron 2009b;
2011, Waldron and Veblen 2008). Waldron has shown that online
See also (Kruse 2012). As part of my online fieldwork, I asked members of thesession if they
thought thesession constituted a community. A vibrant debate emerged, reflecting many
diverse views. Some believed thesession was a community, while others considered it a subcommunity within the larger Irish traditional music community. A handful of members
rejected the notion it was a community at all.
48
While IRTRAD is still an active discussion board, since the rise in popularity of other websites,
such as thesession, its premier status is not as clear as it was in 2001.
47
291
292
dedicated to the subject of Irish traditional music its repertoire, history, practice,
and culture (see Table 6). The table below highlights some websites commonly
used by traditional musicians, and for what primary purposes.
Table 6: Some websites used by Irish traditional musicians51
Website:
www.comhaltas.ie
Official website of
CC
www.pipers.ie
Official website of
Na Pobair Uilleann
www.itma.ie
All quotes in this table are taken from the homepage of each corresponding website [accessed 7
September 2012]. This is an overview of commonly used websites and is not intended as an
extensive list. Other websites include: www.uilleannobsession.com, www.ragandbone.ie,
www.irish-music.net, and www.mudcat.org.
293
www.chiffandfipple.co
m
Chiff & Fipple
www.thesession.org
thesession
www.tradconnect.com
TradConnect
www.oaim.ie
Online Academy of
Irish Music
294
Online Academy of
Irish Music
(continued)
www.livetrad.com
LiveTrad
www.tunepal.org
Tunepal
www.facebook.com
Facebook
www.youtube.com
YouTube
are commonly used by traditional musicians. These various websites have diverse
aims, purposes, features, and uses. Some promote the transmission of traditional
music through online tune databases, while others are designed as social
networking sites. All of the major Irish traditional music organisations, clubs,
summer schools, and festivals now have their own websites and/or Facebook
pages. Social networking sites, such as Facebook and TradConnect, allow
traditional musicians to keep abreast of upcoming gigs, festivals, and other events
in the traditional music community. This type of online communication is a
relatively new social practice within the community of practice, but it is
becoming influential in terms of promoting Irish traditional music. The majority
of my interviewees, and many well-known Irish traditional musicians, are
members of Facebook; some communicate through personal accounts, while
others have established fan or group pages.
Although I visited numerous websites in order to gain a broad
understanding of online activities within the Irish traditional music community, I
primarily conducted my internet fieldwork on www.thesession.org and
www.tradconnect.com.52 My field research mainly involved documenting my
own experiences and learning processes. Thesession and TradConnect share
several features; membership is free on both websites, and both provide
information about upcoming traditional music sessions and events. Members are
also able to communicate on discussion boards or through private messages.53
TradConnect and thesession also have district features and characteristics (some
of which are more educational than others). In the discussion below, I explore the
educational and social implications of using different features on thesession and
TradConnect.
Online and offline communities are not disparate, but often overlap in
meaningful ways. Internet users who interact, communicate, and connect on
thesession and TradConnect occasionally also connect in live, face-to-face musicmaking contexts. The main example of this is the session listing (or the session
database) available on both thesession and TradConnect. Visitors to either
website can search by location in order to discover if there is a session going on
Throughout the dissertation, I refer to these websites as thesession and TradConnect. Similar to
YouTube and Facebook, TradConnect is branded with a distinct capitalization.
53
On both websites, members can choose if other members are allowed to contact them directly.
If they choose to remain private, they only communicate with others on the public discussion
boards, if at all. TradConnect has also introduced a chat feature, where members can
correspond in real-time.
52
296
in their area.54 They can then meet up with other traditional musicians in live
settings. The founder of thesession, Jeremy Keith believes that the best outcome
of the site is that it plays a direct part in people meeting up in "the real world" to
play some tunes together (Keith, e-mail communication). Additionally,
TradConnect was designed as a social networking site for traditional musicians,
and explicitly encourages users to make connections with other traditional
musicians in their area. Tony Lawless, the founder of TradConnect, posts this
philosophy on the websites homepage:
the aim of the site is to connect musicians, no matter
what their level, with other musicians in their area
Whether it is New York, Dublin, London or wherever
you live, there are other people in your town and even
on your street learning Irish traditional music as well.
So why not get together with them to play, practice,
socialise and even start your own session?
(www.tradconnect.com, accessed 25 January 2012).
3500
3000
2500
2000
1500
1000
500
0
TradConnect Membership
April 2011 - February 2013
Unfortunately, this list is often outdated, therefore users of these websites are encouraged to
contact the pub before visiting a listed session.
55
Information on this table was gathered during my field research on www.tradconnect.com.
54
297
57
298
299
When TradConnect members comment on videos, they are posting comments to other
traditional music practitioners and enthusiasts. This type of communication differs from
comments posted on YouTube, which can be viewed by the general population.
300
Rudolph and Frankel also argue that YouTube is designed to be more than just a
place to view videos. It can also be a community for you and your students
(2009:36). Because YouTube acts as an informal, participatory community, there
are significant and numerous implications regarding informal and social learning
processes.
60
On Facebook, I saw a friend post a YouTube video of Julia Clifford playing a slow air, and was
particularly inspired to try to play along on my fiddle (Fieldnotes, 12 December 2011).
[http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=eWDzITNz7Tc, accessed 28 Feb 2013]. This is video of
Julia originally aired on the television programme Come West Along the Road.
302
In 2001, Sommers Smith argued that the internet does not significantly
affect the transmission of Irish traditional music because the learning process
requires personal listening: only close and prolonged listening allows a learner to
grasp the forms, rhythms, and nuances of the music (2001:123). Between the
1990s and 2005, posting on discussion boards was the main online activity within
traditional music circles. Now that users can watch traditional music
performances on websites, such as TradConnect, LiveTrad, and YouTube, the
internet has the potential to significantly alter transmission and learning practices
within the Irish traditional music community. (Many learners of Irish traditional
music have already experienced a shift in learning practices). Once a learner has
access to a computer and internet access, they can repeatedly listen and view
streaming videos of traditional music-making, free of charge; this has obvious
and profound implications for the learning process.
On online forums, traditional music enthusiasts and practitioners often
engage in various discussions and exchange information. Engaging in online
forums can be particularly meaningful for learners who are self-taught or who
may not live near other practitioners. Experienced practitioners are able to
discuss historical, cultural, or philosophical issues, such as changes to traditional
music culture. The lively discussion board on thesession is one of the websites
most characteristic features, and members post about various issues, including:
o Inquiries about the names of tunes (generally by posting YouTube links)
o Instrumental techniques and learning practices
o The general direction of Irish traditional music and its culture
o Discussion of performances and YouTube videos
o Discussions about traditional musicians, upcoming events, recordings,
festivals
o Tributes to recently ill or deceased musicians, singers, dancers, and
enthusiasts
o Equipment and instruments for sale (or lost/stolen)
o Announcement of new publications, commercial recordings, websites,
schools, etc.
To the outside observer, the discussion boards appear to be the most active area of
the website. However, as Jeremy Keith suggests, the silent majority of people
using thesession more commonly engage with the tune database, rather than the
active discussion boards:
303
304
since members can use conflict to deepen their relationships and their learning
(2002:37). In fact, controversies stir the pot and can lead to more interest and
discourse on online discussion boards (Wenger, McDermott, and Snyder
2002:132).
On discussion boards, members of thesession occasionally post YouTube
videos of their own playing for advice and criticism. Although this can be a
useful exercise, it is not for the fainthearted. During my fieldwork, while I
observed several examples of members providing encouragement and
constructive criticism, I also observed blunt or generally negative posts.
Additionally, some members who respond to posts can lack expertise in Irish
traditional music or the particular instrument in question (although some
commentators can be quite knowledgeable or expert practitioners). Wenger,
McDermott, and Snyder suggest that in distributed communities, members
commonly solicit advice from the general population. However, this is relatively
uncommon in local communities, where members tend to approach trusted
members for feedback (2002:121). While learners of Irish traditional music need
feedback in order to progress, they may find it more beneficial to seek advice
from trusted peers and mentors. While trusting and personal relationships are
frequently established within distributed communities, according to Wenger,
McDermott, and Snyder, these types of relationships can be more difficult to
establish and sustain since members often have less opportunities for contact
(2002:121).
This section explored some important educational implications of
engaging with online activities and resources. Perhaps the most significant
educational consequence is the ability to watch and listen to performances of
Irish traditional music from the convenience of ones own home. I suggest that
watching steaming videos on the internet may be a significant learning
experience for some Irish traditional musicians at present, and perhaps will be for
many more in the near future. While my interviewees did not discuss the learning
of technique or repertoire by watching steaming videos in detail, this may be due
to the fact that I only posed broad questioned about the role of the internet during
the music learning process. My interviewees may have watched and been
influenced by videos, but did not think to mention such informal learning
experiences. However, during my internet fieldwork, I observed many traditional
musicians (of all ages) posting and discussing YouTube videos on various social
305
networking sites. During sessions and festivals, learners and musicians also
commonly discuss YouTube videos. Throughout this section, I also discussed the
role of social networking sites, such as Facebook and TradConnect, and how
many traditional musicians now communicate and access information about Irish
traditional music events, including sessions, concerts, festivals, and summer
schools. On TradConnect, online members are able to connect and interact during
offline music-making sessions, and this has significant implications for sociomusical life within the Irish traditional music community. Because of the
complexities and ever-changing nature of the internet, more research is needed to
explore the ways Irish traditional musicians use the internet, and how this affects
music learning and enculturation processes.
Emerging Technologies
In this section, I discuss some emerging technologies which are beginning to play
a role in the learning of Irish traditional music. According to my field
observations, the use of smartphones and apps is increasing exponentially, and
these experiences have the potential to provide new and interesting ways of
learning Irish traditional music.63
During my field research in traditional music sessions, I frequently
observed Irish traditional musicians of all ages using their mobile or smartphones
to record the live music. Although one might assume that smartphone technology
may have more of an impact on a younger generation of players, my observations
suggest that adult musicians are also adopting such innovations. Since the
emergence of smartphones, people are able to digitally record hours of music
without microphones or other equipment. These sound recordings can be labelled,
organized, and saved onto a personal computer for easy access at later stages of
the learning process.
Musicians often manipulate technology to meet their needs. For instance,
Aoife Granville discusses how she uses her mobile phone in order to internalize
new repertoire:
63
Smartphones, including iPhones and Android phones, are mobile phones with additional
computational capabilities. They also preform the functions of other gadgets, including
personal digital assistants (PDAs), portable audio-video players, and digital cameras.
306
307
65
(Matt Cranitch, Hammy Hamilton, Seamus Sands, interviews). During a session in the Corner
House, Matt Cranitch showed me the app on his iPhone, and stated that although he didnt use
it, many of his students found it quite useful (fieldnotes, 3 Feb 2012).
308
Using Tunepal, learners can play an already known tune to discover its
name, notation, and other background information. They can also retrieve this
information when listening in live situations, such as concerts and sessions.
Essentially, Tunepal connects sounds which are played in live contexts to preexisting collections of Irish traditional music; the three main sources of which are
the database on thesession, ONeills 1001 (1907), and Breathnachs Ceol Rince
na hireann (1963, 1976). Drawing on these three collections, Tunepal operates
on a corpus of 3,290 tunes (Duggan 2010:3). Tunepal is free to use online, and
costs $4.99 to download as an app.68 Tunepal is currently the highest rated, most
downloaded, and most sophisticated traditional music app available.69
Although my interviewees did not discuss using Tunepal in order to learn,
The app is available through the iTunes store (http://itunes.apple.com/app/amazing-slowdowner/id308998718?mt=).
67
Duggan keeps an online blog about the project, and frequently publicizing news and
improvements to Tunepal. See (http://tunepal.wordpress.com).
68
An internet connection is required for the app to work on a smartphone. The Tunepal app is
available through the iTunes store
(https://itunes.apple.com/us/app/tunepal/id356935033?mt=8&ign-mpt=uo%3D6).
69
User ratings and other such information is available to the public on the iTunes apps store. See
(http://itunes.apple.com/ie/app/tunepal/id356935033?mt=8, accessed 8 September 2012).
66
309
some comment on the implications this innovation has for the transmission
process. For example, Geraldine OCallaghan states of Tunepal:
I was made aware of this piece of technology recently
and Im completely in awe of it Two months ago, I
was trying to come up with a name of a tune, and I had
to make two phone calls to get the name of the tune. I
eventually got it from a man seventy-seven years of age,
living in a cottage in Rockchapel. So, Its just a different
landscape now, its hard to imagine (OCallaghan,
interview).
When asked if she thought the change of landscape was negative, Geraldine
replied:
No, not at all! Its fantastic. Obviously I love traditional
music and I love the fact that its so accessible to me
now. Im able to listen to any music I want to, any hour
of the day or night online (interview).
If she used TunePal, Geraldine may have been able to access the name of the tune
more quickly and efficiently. However, in doing so, she would have missed the
opportunity to talk with an older practitioner. This raises meaningful questions to
ponder in the future; what do learners gain by using seemingly more efficient
technological resources? What, if anything, is not nurtured in the process of using
such learning aids?
Several other traditional music apps are also available for download. For
instance, TradTunes, developed in 2009 by Stuart Woolley, provides ABC
notation of 850 traditional tunes. Unlike Tunepal, TradTunes is not a retrieval
system, so users can only browse or search repertoire by name. In this way,
TradTunes is not useful to a learner who may have a tune in their mind, and
wishes to discover the name or research the tune further. However, TradTunes is
helpful in other ways; If a musician cannot recall how a tune begins (which is a
relatively common occurrence), they can use TradTunes to reference the first few
notes, which may trigger their aural memory of the tune.70
While TradTunes and Tunepal are intended for users with some previous
knowledge and experience of Irish traditional music, other apps are marketed
towards novices. In 2011, Marion Martin and Mairad Hickey launched an
educational app called Irish Fiddler, which features video lessons with Hickey
70
310
demonstrating repertoire and fiddle techniques.71 Other similar apps are available
for other traditional instruments, including the Irish Flute and Irish Music
Tutor apps. Other apps serve a purely entertainment purposes, such as the
Uilleann Irish Bagpipes Chanter and Drones app, which allows users to play
the pipes, by hitting the regulators on the screen.
Smartphone technology, including digital phonography and apps, are
beginning to play an increasing role in the transmission of Irish traditional music.
As these new emerging technologies enter the community of practice, traditional
musicians learning experiences will continue to change in unexpected ways. For
this reason, more research is needed to explore how using such innovations can
affect learning and enculturation processes.
Concluding Thoughts
In this chapter, I have argued that using technology is a social practice which can
play a significant role in learning and enculturation processes. I explored the
ways traditional musicians engage with written sources, phonographic
technology, video recordings, the internet, and other technologies, and discussed
some corresponding educational and social implications. I propose that these
experiences provide additional opportunities to learn Irish traditional music.
Within the interview data, several interviewees discuss how various forms of
technology provide new ways to immerse ones self into Irish traditional music.
Seamus Sands discusses the impact phonographic technology has had on
transmission, culture, and practice:
[Sound recording] has brought the music to a much
wider audience Back in the day, you had to go
immerse yourself in a small village, and you could only
learn from the local guy down the road. I think it has
also exposed people to many diverse styles, and then
you can pick and choose what suits you (Sands,
interview).
Technology influences how and what Irish traditional musicians learn. As Seamus
suggests, traditional musicians can now learn and imitate diverse styles of
playing. Broadly speaking, by providing convenient access to resources,
71
311
With the advent of traditional music websites, thesessions massive tune database,
YouTube, and iTunes, learners have more access to videos, commercial
recordings and information about Irish traditional music than ever before. While
technology can easily accelerate the learning process, I suggest that enculturation
the process of learning ones own culture is not so easily accelerated. Indeed,
because enculturation is an on-going, lifelong process, it by definition cannot be
fast-tracked. As Geraldine suggests above, cultural and social understanding is
largely achieved through experience.
Several of my interviewees also emphasized that engaging with
312
Lastly, the technologies I have discussed in this chapter are not inherently
effective or ineffective educational tools. The educational efficacy of these tools
depends on how well the learner utilizes these tools. As Drucker argues:
technology is not, as our grandparents believed, the
magic wand that can make all human problems and
limitation disappear. We now know that technological
potential is, indeed, even greater than they thought. But
we have also learned that technology, as a creature of
man, is as problematical, as ambivalent, and as capable
of good or evil, as is its creator (1970:67).
mentors and by engaging with different forms of technology learners have more
opportunities to negotiate cultural, social, and musical meaning and develop their
identities as Irish traditional musicians.
314
Chapter 5
Patterns of Enculturation in Irish Traditional Music Culture
Enculturation within Irish traditional music culture is a complex and long-term
process which involves numerous informal, non-formal, and formal learning
experiences. Over the years, traditional musicians engage in various learning and
music-making activities, and each experience provides specific opportunities for
musical and socio-cultural development. By drawing on my field research and
interviews with twenty traditional musicians, I have detailed common learning
experiences within traditional music culture. More importantly, this descriptive
analysis allowed me to search for patterns of enculturation, providing insight into
the process of becoming a traditional musician. Throughout the dissertation, I
provided examples of how particular learning experiences foster enculturation
and I have outlined some challenges and limitations of engaging in each learning
practice. When we consider the diverse opinions about the effectiveness of each
learning experience, investigating transmission, learning, and developmental
processes becomes an even more complex endeavour. In this final chapter, I
begin by summarizing the discussion thus far and suggesting new avenues for
research in the future. I conclude with an exploration of some significant patterns
of enculturation within Irish traditional music culture.
This dissertation is the first major study within the field of Irish traditional
music to focus solely on learning and enculturation processes from the
perspective of the learner. By focusing on adult professional and semiprofessional musicians, the thesis presents a specific perspective of the learning
process. Other scholars may expand on issues raised here and explore how
novices, intermediate, and amateur musicians experience musical enculturation.
Considering the complex issues associated with musical enculturation, it was also
necessary to focus on traditional musicians born in Ireland. However, the Irish
traditional music community of practice is international, and more research is
needed in the future to explore the enculturation of traditional musicians outside
of Ireland. While the scope of this thesis is specific, it provides an initial
exploration of musical enculturation within Irish traditional music culture.
315
Summary
One of the aims of my research was to outline some effective learning activities
that Irish traditional musicians engage with throughout the course of their musical
development and enculturation. In Chapters 2, 3, and 4, I not only highlight the
benefits of each learning experience, but also some of the challenges learners
may face when engaging with these learning practices. Below I summarize the
major learning practices that I have detailed throughout the thesis, and how these
positively influenced the interviewees musical progression from novices to
skilled musicians.
In Chapter 2, I discussed socio-musical interactions between peers,
mentors, and family members, and explored learning processes which occur
during informal musical and social contexts, including get-togethers in houses,
traditional music sessions, and other live music events. Many interviewees,
described interactions with other musicians as primary influences in terms of
their musical development. I emphasized that learning Irish traditional music is a
socially situated process, and discussed the role of peers and mentors. I proposed
that Irish traditional music is a community of practice, and from this perspective,
learning is conceived as a process in which novices gradually move from a
peripheral position to a more central position within the community of practice
(Lave and Wenger 1991). This process of becoming an active member of the
community of practice involves the acquisition of repertoire and technical skills,
as well as learning and embodying cultural, social, and historical aspects of Irish
traditional music.
My research suggests that the role played by family in the enculturation of
Irish traditional musicians is complex. The interview data suggests that it is
relatively uncommon to learn a traditional instrument directly and primarily from
ones parents. In contrast, musical interactions with siblings and members of the
extended family are much more commonplace. A significant theme emerges
within Chapter 2, which is that traditional musicians often learn by interacting
with friends and family members of a similar age, not merely by imitating an
older, more experienced group of practitioners. Many interviewees highlight how
playing and learning music alongside their siblings and cousins, for example,
were important moments during their musical enculturation. My investigation
also suggests that family members who are not active musicians, singers, or
316
festivals. While these contexts are more organized, many learning processes
which occur in these settings often retain characteristics of informal music
learning. Aural learning and imitation still plays a central role, while formal
assessments and examinations are uncommon in these settings. Many of the
learning contexts discussed in Chapter 3 emerged during and after the 1950s, and
were established in a conscious effort to revive and promote Irish traditional
music. Attending weekly classes, summer schools, and festivals are common
learning experiences, particularly amongst traditional musicians born after the
1970s. Because Irish traditional music is primarily transmitted outside of the
formal education system, extra-curricular tuition and activities play a significant
role in learning and enculturation processes. Organizations, such as Comhaltas
Ceoltir ireann and pipers clubs, provide weekly tuition and other activities
throughout the year. In addition to the transmission of skills and repertoire, social
connections made in traditional music organizations can nurture learners musical
enculturation.
Summer schools and workshops at festivals are common sites for the
learning of repertoire, techniques, and other aspects of traditional music culture.
My interviewees narratives and field observations suggest that enculturation at
these events occur by engaging in music-making and socializing during informal
and ancillary activities, in addition to participating in structured classes. Some
traditional music summer schools, such as Scoil Samhraidh Willie Clancy, have a
festival-like atmosphere, as they host numerous concerts, recitals, gigs, cilithe,
sessions, and other informal music-making activities. Many of my interviewees
made meaningful connections to other practitioners and described these events as
memorable and motivational.
Although the philosophy of CCs Fleadh Cheoil places an emphasis on
raising standards through structured competitions, many interviewees suggested
that informal, non-competitive music-making was the most enjoyable and
memorable experience at the Fleadh Cheoil na ireann. In the section on CC
competitions, I explored the varying opinions my interviewees have about the
effectiveness and necessity of competition as a way of transmitting and
promoting Irish traditional music. Weighting all the evidence and opinions, I
concluded that competition is a highly effective way to motivate some learners of
Irish traditional music, but not all. Considering this, I propose that noncompetitive solo and group recitals should play a more central role in festivals
318
like the Fleadh Cheoil, but do not advocate completely eliminating competitions.
In Chapter 4, I explored the many ways traditional musicians use
technology and how this affects learning and enculturation processes. Due to the
pervasiveness of technology in modern culture, I suggest that use of technology
plays a significant role in the enculturation of Irish traditional musicians. While
not all traditional musician use technology as a way to consciously learn or hone
their skills, technology has become a part of traditional musicians day-to-day
experience. Historically, written sources are the first technological innovation to
impact the transmission of Irish traditional music. Because traditional musicians
use written sources in various ways and some more than others, the influence of
written sources on the transmission of Irish traditional music and its culture is
difficult to generalize. Some interviewees described relatively consistent and
regular experiences using written sources, while others used them rarely or only
during the early stages of the learning process. ABC notation is often used in
conjunction with aural learning in many traditional music classes and workshops.
In class situations, notation occasionally functions as an instructional tool, or
more commonly, as a memory aid for later practice. Many of my interviewees
suggest that notation is a useful aid to ease children into aural learning. Some
interviewees also use written collections as a way to research tunes that they have
already learned aurally. By using notation in this way, musicians can research
different versions or check for possible discrepancies. Instrumental tutor books
are also useful resources for musicians, especially in terms of learning
instrumental techniques.
Of all the forms of technology, phonographic technology is the most
frequently used by Irish traditional musicians. By listening to commercial and
non-commercial recordings, traditional musicians can absorb, imitate, and
assimilate repertoire and stylistic nuances. My research also suggests that
listening to commercial recordings has significant social implications and
ultimately affects the enculturation of traditional musicians. I have also argued
that video recordings have enormous education potential as learners can hear and
observe traditional music-making in action. While video recordings have played
less of a role in musical enculturation historically, with the emergence of
websites, such as YouTube, many videos of Irish traditional music performances
are now circulated amongst traditional musicians and enthusiasts. Links to these
videos are often posted and shared on social networking sites, including
319
Facebook and TradConnect. Because of the rapid rate of change within the
technology sector, more research is needed on the role the internet and new
emerging technologies, such as smartphone apps, plays in musical enculturation.
There are also numerous implications for teachers of Irish traditional music;
perhaps new forms of technology and media can be used within and outside of
the classroom to enrich pupils experience. This could also be investigated by
future researchers of music education.
Although Chapters 2, 3, and 4 are organized based on broad types of
learning, many of the learning practices discussed throughout the thesis overlap
in meaningful ways. When my interviewees described a memory of learning Irish
traditional music, they often discussed more than one learning practice
simultaneously. For example, many attended summer schools alongside their
siblings, and forms of technology are often used within institutional and informal
contexts, such as workshops and sessions. This highlights the fact that traditional
musicians often use a multiplicity of approaches and methodologies throughout
the learning process. My research indicates that it is this multiplicity of practices
which leads to socially situated and effective learning experiences.
Aoife Granville also believes that its really important to have someone or a
network of people in order to develop musically (Granville, interview). Several
interviewees suggested that a learners musical environment and social circle
plays a role in learning and enculturation processes. Other than listening and
interaction with other practitioners, there is little evidence within the interview
data to suggest there are strict rules and procedures to follow in order to become a
traditional musician; many of my interviewees highlighted the diversity of
practice in Irish traditional music around the world, and suggested that
individuals find their own pathways to become traditional musicians.
Interviewees also frequently rejected ideas that learners needed to be born into a
musical family or needed to take lessons from a well-known teacher.
The ethnomusicological literature provides examples of musical cultures
which have well-established traditions of teaching and learning activities, and
clearly defined cultural beliefs of the process of becoming a musician. Within
North Indian classical music culture, the guru-shishya relationship is considered
crucial to the enculturation process. In his ethnography, Neuman discusses the
common cultural belief that there are three elements required to become a
performer of art music in India: (1) one's will or discipline, (2) one's teacher or
perhaps more properly one's guide, and (3) one's spiritual status (1990:30).
Within North Indian Classical Music culture, learners must have guru, and
321
through this relationship, they develop the spiritual devotion and discipline
required in order to become a musician. As another example, the process of
becoming a musician within Afghani culture is strongly connected to Afghanis
conceptions of the roles hereditary families and gender play within their society
(Baily 1988a; Baily and Doubleday 1990). Afghani boys from hereditary musical
families are expected to become musicians, while non-hereditary musicians and
girls are often discouraged from music-making (Baily and Doubleday 1990:912).72 The musical cultures of Afghanistan and North India have well-defined
belief systems of enculturation processes. Within the Irish traditional music
community, cultural beliefs are equally ingrained in the enculturation process.
However, according to my interview data, enculturation within Irish traditional
music culture appears to be a relatively diverse and pliable process. The
enculturation process can be viewed as flexible, since there is no apparent
consensus amongst my interviewees about any activity that learners must engage
with in order to develop as Irish traditional musicians. Other than listening, my
research found no evidence that there is one culturally defined way in which to
become a traditional musician. There are numerous learning activities available
for musicians to engage in throughout their enculturation, and learners can
choose activities based on their personal background and preference.
Longevity of Participation
All of my interviewees experienced longevity of participation within Irish
traditional music. They each have played traditional music for more than ten
years and over a significant portion of their lifetimes. Longevity does not imply
that interviewees participation was completely stable over the years. Indeed,
some interviewees reported that their interest waned slightly during their teenage
years (Lisa OSullivan, Michael OSullivan, and John Reid, interviews).
Although enthusiasm fluctuated throughout the enculturation process, no
interviewee stopped playing traditional music for any significant amount of time.
I suggest that when individuals develop a passionate interest in Irish traditional
music, they are more likely to experience long-term participation in musicmaking and begin to identify with Irish traditional music and its culture.
72
Baily and Doubleday suggest that Afghani women musicians are often viewed as prostitutes
(1990:89-90), and as girls approached puberty, music making was discouraged; it was
necessary to become responsible, modest and hardworking (1990:92).
322
Interviewees commonly spoke of their love for Irish traditional music and their
close connections to other practitioners. For instance, when I asked Mick Daly
why he had continued playing traditional music for so many years, he replied:
Cause I love it Because of friendship I've formed with
Dave [Hennessey] and Matt [Cranitch] From that
point of view, it was just a case of you just play music
with your friendsSo there are just a bunch of people I
hung out with over the years and thats why I suppose I
got immersed in it (Daly, interview).
Within the interview data, themes of enjoyment, fun, and passion are common,
while themes of hard work, sacrifice, or dedication are infrequent.73 Musicians
tend to participate over the long-term because they experience musical and social
enjoyment, rather than because they feel some obligation to traditional music,
culture, family, or society at large.
Every interviewee experienced prolonged participation, regardless of their
familys musical background. As I argued in Chapter 2, children do not need to be
born in a musical household to develop into accomplished and expressive
traditional musicians. Parents who are musicians, dancers, singers, enthusiasts, or
non-musicians can listen and watch Irish traditional music alongside their
children, which enriches their childrens musical experience. Early exposure to
music is a major factor in developmental and enculturation processes, and this
exposure can occur in numerous ways. Children who have active music-makers
as parents benefit from observing and hearing live music-making on a regular
basis. These children also absorb the musical syntax from an early age. My
research suggests that early exposure is also possible and in my interviewees
experiences, common in households where parents are not instrumentalists.
Regardless of family musical background, most interviewees started playing in
early childhood. Mick Daly and Hammy Hamilton are the only interviewees who
learned Irish traditional music later in life. Mick and Hammy started playing
traditional music in their early twenties, and have been active traditional
musicians ever since.74
From a cultural perspective, long-term participation within a musical
73
74
323
Weisberg also argues that personal style and artistic innovation develops due to
the long-standing interest of the artists and thought processes (1986:115).
It takes a significant amount of time to listen to, absorb, and assimilate the
syntax and subtleties of Irish traditional music style and expression. For instance,
hearing and comprehending ornamentation does not come instantly, but develops
gradually overtime. As Hammy Hamilton suggests, it is easy for novices to
mistake a roll for a bit of vibrato or something (interview). For this reason,
learners are able to imitate, experiment, and recreate ornaments on their
instrument only after the absorption stage.75 Musicians develop their own sense
of style and personal expression after an elongated time listening to, absorbing,
imitating, and creatively interpreting Irish traditional music. As the old adage
suggests, it takes twenty-one years to master the uilleann pipes; seven years
learning, seven years practicing, and seven years playing. Some interviewees
highlighted the long period of time it takes to learn Irish traditional music. Liz
Doherty started to learn the fiddle at age nine, but she was nearly eighteen years
of age before she felt ready to participate in sessions. Liz contrasts this to some
learners who feel Irish music is simple and can be learned quite quickly:
I started when I was nine but I was about seventeen or
eighteen before I felt ready for sessions I was learning
for a long time, and it absolutely dumbfounds me when
I hear people say in a session, Oh, Ive been playing
75
Although novices can imitate rolls without absorbing and understanding such subtleties, the
results are usually not successful until they become more familiarized with the syntax of Irish
traditional music.
324
While one can learn the notes of a jig relatively quickly, it takes a considerable
amount of time and effort to develop the expressive and subtle solo skills that are
characteristic and intrinsic to Irish traditional music.
According to my interview data, traditional musicians spend a
considerable amount of time engaging with Irish traditional music in private,
which improves their skills and develops their musical expression. But
interestingly, this engagement at home is often considered playing, rather than a
separate preparatory activity for later music-making. In discussing how one
develops as a traditional musician, my interviewees generally placed a greater
emphasis on playing, rather than practicing. For instance, Martin Hayes
discusses how his learning process was fueled by his enthusiasm to play. Martin
suggests that he played so often, that he did not feel the need to practice:
The way I learned was very haphazard and very relaxed,
and there was absolutely nothing formal at all about it.
My learning was driven by my own enthusiasm for it,
and my own desire to play. Nobody pushed me, nobody
said when or where. I use to play in the mornings before
Id have breakfast, Id play in the evening before
dinner... I just wanted to play because I just liked
playing... I never felt like I had to even practice. All I
ever did was play. But I mean, in playing I also aspired
to make the expression of the music more real, to do it
with a better tone, to be able to summon the syncopation
of the rhythm when I needed (Hayes, interview).
While Martin feels that he played with goals and aspirations of improving, he
considers his music-making at home playing, not practicing. If we accept the
Oxford English Dictionarys definition that practice is the repeated execution of
a skill in order to acquire or maintain proficiency, we can assert that Martin
practiced. Regardless of this definition, the distinctions that Martin makes
between playing and practicing illustrate a meaningful cultural pattern; my
interviewees value informal music-making and informal learning experiences.
Regardless if we label it playing or practicing, it takes a significant amount of
time to engage with ones instrument and Irish traditional music in order to
325
develop as a musician.
If long-term participation is crucial for musical enculturation, then there
are significant implications for the teaching and learning of Irish traditional
music. Primarily, I suggest that learning experiences which nurture prolonged
participation and enjoyment can play an influential role in musical enculturation.
Within the Irish traditional music community, musical enjoyment, rather than
innate musical talent, seems to be a key indicator that a learner will participate in
music-making for a prolonged period of time and begin to identify themselves as
a traditional musician.
326
They may withdraw from one experience and begin to engage with another
learning method or practice. Some interviewees, for example, highlighted the
difficultly they experienced when trying to learn during traditional music
sessions. If musicians do not feel comfortable in pub sessions, they may choose,
instead, to play informally at home with peers, or join a beginners session at the
local CC branch. Novices who have difficulty learning aurally can use a
combination of listening practices and written sources in order to progress to the
next stage of development. Musicians who may be overwhelmed by the crowds at
the Fleadh Cheoil na hireann may choose to attend and play at smaller, more
intimate festivals, such as the Baltimore Fiddle Fair or Cruinni na bhFliit.
If engaging in multiple learning scenarios is central to musical
enculturation, learners should be encouraged to experience the many different
learning and performances contexts within the traditional music community. Over
the generations, parents, teachers, and organizers of traditional music institutions
have done precisely this. When learners engage in rich and diverse learning and
musical practices, they will be able to find the most suitable and enjoyable
activity for their own musical development. As this study illustrates, musical and
social enjoyment is key to longevity of participation, and longevity of
participation is an integral part of the process of becoming an Irish traditional
musician.
Currently, Irish traditional music is a thriving community of practice.
Throughout the year, more festivals, organizations, workshops, and performance
opportunities are available to learners of Irish traditional music than ever before.
The vitality of the community has created new and diverse learning and
performance contexts. In turn, these new opportunities for engagement contribute
to the health of the community. Since the revival of the 1950s and 60s, Irish
traditional music has entered into a cycle of renewal, and this intensified and
perpetuated a growing interest in Irish traditional music. My research suggests
that the diverse learning opportunities now available foster musical enculturation
and contribute to the vitality of the community of practice.
328
Appendix A
Glossary
Below you will find a glossary of some common terms used within Irish
traditional music discourse and throughout this dissertation. This table is intended
for quick references, and only provides a basic definition of each term. As in the
rest of the thesis, Irish words are printed in italics.
barn dance
A form of round the hall social dance most popular up to the 1950s. It
was generally performed to hornpipe time (4/4) (Vallely 1999:25). The
barn dance in Donegal has the unusual title of the german.(Mac Aoidh
1994:110).
Cairdeas na
bhFidlir
cathaoirleach
an Chuallacht
Irish for the fellowship. This is the name of UCCs Irish Language
Society.
ceol
cil
cilithe
Plural of cil
craic
cran
cut
double
stopping
feis
fleadh
329
fleadhanna
Plural of fleadh
Fleadh Cheoil
na hireann
gaelscoil
A school which teaches pupils through the medium of the Irish language.
gaeltacht
glottal
stopping
hornpipes
jig
Jigs come in three types: single, double, and slip. Single jigs are also
called slides (Williams 2010:146). Double jigs are in 6/8 time, single
jigs in 6/8 or 12/8 time, and slip jigs (and hop jigs) are in 9/8 time. See
also slides.
meitheal
Na Pobair
Uilleann
Oireachtas,
An t-
ornament
pat
polka
330
Raido na
Gaeltachta
reels
roll
Scoil igse
Scoil
The Willie Clancy Summer School takes place every July in Miltown
Samhraidh
Willie Clancy
sean-ns
Literally old style, refers most often to style of song. Also indicates
freer, old style of solo step-dance (Vallely 1999:336).
slides
The slide is a tune type associated with the jig family, in particular the
single jig. A slide is in effect a fast single jig. It is in 6/8 or 12/8 time and
the predominant rhythm involves the alternation of crotchets and
quavers creating the feeling of long and short (Doherty 1999:201).
trebling
uilleann pipes
331
Appendix B
Interviews and Personal Communications
Interviews with Irish traditional musicians:
The table below provides basic information about the twenty traditional
musicians who took part in this study. This is for easy reference and the table is
organized chronologically from the first interview I conducted to the last.
Following this table, I have also provided more written descriptions of each
interviewee. This appendix concludes with a list of my personal communications
with various organizers, including pub managers, and organizers of summer
schools, festivals, and websites.
Name
Instrument(s)
Year of
birth
Seamus
Sands
Fiddle, whistle
1963
Newry, Down
2/2/2010
45 min.
Conal
Grda
Flute, whistle,
pipes
1961
Cork City
27/4/2010
34 min.
Cormac
De Frein
Flute, whistle,
piano
1980
Dn Laoghaire,
Dublin
12/5/2010
18/5/2010
15 min.
20 min.
Aoife
Granville
Flute, fiddle,
whistle, fife, piano 1979
(F. horn)
Dingle, Kerry
20/5/2010
30 min.
John Reid
Pipes, whistle
1971
Inch, Clare
26/7/2010
34 min.
Lisa
O'Sullivan
Fiddle, whistle
1975
34 min.
Mick Daly
Guitar, 5-sting
Banjo, mandolin
1950
Cork City
35 min.
Michael
O'Sullivan
Banjo, whistle,
cil band drums
James
Duggan
Fiddle, whistle,
flute.
Ciara
N
Fhearghail
Toms
Canainn
1978
28/9/2010
30 min.
1989
Listowel, Kerry
11/11/2010
65 min.
Whistle, button
accordion
1991
An Rinn,
Waterford
23/11/2010
21 min.
Pipes, whistle,
accordion
1930
Derry City
8/12/2010
39 min
I conducted the majority of my interviews in pubs before traditional music sessions. Other
interviews took place in cafs after UCCs traditional music concert series, and two took place
in kitchens since it was more convenient for the participants.
332
Instrument(s)
Year of
Birth
Connie
O'Connell
Fiddle
1943
Kilnamartra,
Cork
11/1/2011
65 min.
Matt
Cranitch
Fiddle, piano
1948
Rathduff, Cork
1/2/2011
43 min.
Martin
Hayes
Fiddle, banjo
1962
Maghera,
Feakle, Clare
4/2/2011
35 min.
1970
Armagh, Co.
Armagh
7/2/2011
57 min
1983
Lisnagry,
Limerick
17/2/2011
64 min.
1970
Buncrana,
Donegal
18/2/2011
48 min.
Hammy
Hamilton
Flute, whistle,
(guitar, banjo)
1953
Belfast, Antrim
18/3/2011
63 min.
Geraldine
OCallahan
Fiddle, whistle,
concertina, piano
1982
Freemount, Cork
3/5/2011
10/5/2011
33 min.
13 min.
1949
55 min.
Concertina
Niall Vallely (whistle, pipes,
trumpet)
Button accordion,
whistle, piano,
guitar
Helen
Gubbins
with these groups, Matt has also recorded with Jackie Daly, and released a solo
album in 1988 entitled Give it Shtick. Matts research focuses on the Sliabh
Luachra fiddle tradition (Cranitch 2006), and he has written an exceptional fiddle
tutor book (Cranitch 2001). Matt also teaches master classes at various summer
music schools and festivals in Ireland and around the world.
Mick Daly (b. 1950) is a singer, guitar and banjo player from Cork City. Mick
has performed with several Irish traditional music, folk, and old time music
groups, including Any Old Time, The Lee Valley String Band, The Mary Black
Band, Scullion, and Four Men and a Dog. Mick regularly leads and plays
sessions in the Corner House pub.
Cormac De Frein (b. 1980) is a flute player from Dn Laoghaire, Co. Dublin.
Cormac originally moved to Cork City to work as an engineer, but retrained and
is now working as a secondary school teacher. Cormac leads many sessions in
Cork City and is well-known in the area for his powerful, driving flute playing.
Liz Doherty (b. 1970) is a fiddle player, lecturer, teacher, and researcher from
Buncrana, Co. Donegal. She has recorded and toured with Nomos, Fiddlesticks,
the Bumblebees, and Riverdance. Her research interests include the Cape Bretton
and Nova Scotia fiddle traditions. Liz is currently a lecturer of Irish traditional
music at the University of Ulster.
James Duggan (b. 1989) is a teacher and fiddle player from Listowel, Co. Kerry.
James graduated from University College Cork as a student of English and Irish.
James teaches at the Douglas CC branch and enjoys playing in sessions on a
regular basis.
Aoife Granville is a teacher, researcher, and flute and fiddle player from Dingle,
Co. Kerry. Her PhD thesis explores Dingles wren tradition (Granville 2012). She
teaches at several summer schools and workshops throughout the year, and
released a solo album in 2006 entitled Srid Eoin Shuffle.
Helen Gubbins (b. 1983) is an accordion, whistle, and piano player from
Lisnagry, Co. Limerick. She studied music at undergraduate and graduate levels
334
at University College Cork. She has also toured with various groups, including
Five Mile Chase, Owenabue Valley Group, and The Irish Rambling House. In
2010, she released a duet album with Tim Langen, entitled Boys of 25 and the
Connaught Heifers.
Hammy Hamilton (b. 1953) is a teacher, scholar, composer, and flute player
from Belfast, Co. Antrim. After moving to the area several decades ago, Hammy
now lives and makes flutes in his workshop in Cil Aodha, Co. Cork. Along with
other locals, Hammy helped to establish and organize Cruinni na bhFliit. In
addition to interviewing Hammy about his learning experiences, I also
interviewed him about the history, organization, and philosophy of Cruinni na
bhFliit. Hammy Hamilton is also an ethnomusicologist, who has researched
Irish traditional music sessions as a socio-cultural phenomenon (Hamilton 1978),
and the role of commercial recordings within traditional music culture (Hamilton
1996). He has also produced a comprehensive handbook for traditional flute
playing and maintenance (Hamilton 1990), and an instructional DVD is available
on Hammys website, www.hamiltonflutes.com.2 Hammy has recorded in a solo
capacity (Moneymusk, 1990), as well with Con ODriscoll and Seamus Creagh on
the 2005 album, Its No Secret.
Martin Hayes (b. 1962) is fiddle player and teacher from Maghera, Co. Clare.
Raised in a musical household near Feakle, Martin is known as one of the most
masterful and expressive fiddle players within contemporary Irish traditional
music. He currently lives in Connecticut, USA, but often tours Ireland and around
the world with guitarist, Dennis Cahill. Martin and Dennis have collaborated on
albums, such as Welcome Here Again (2008), Live in Seattle (1999), and the
Lonesome Touch (1997). Martin has also released two solo albums, Martin Hayes
(1993) and Under the Moon (1995). Martin won TG4s Gradam Ceoil award for
Musician of the Year in 2008. Martin Hayes also teaches many workshops at
summer schools, festivals, and other events throughout the year.
335
Toms Canainn (b. 1930) is an author, lecturer, composer, singer, piper, and
accordion player originally from Derry. He has taught, played music in lived in
Cork for over forty years. In addition to his publications on Irish traditional music
and its culture ( Canainn 1993), Toms has written an intriguing memoir about
his musical life and travels ( Canainn 1996). With a love and passion for the
Irish language, Toms has written three Irish masses which are still regularly
performed near his home in Glanmire, Co. Cork. Toms has also performed and
recorded with numerous musical groups over the years, including the Liverpool
Cil Band and Na Fil.
336
Conal Grda (b. 1961) is a well-known flute player, composer, and teacher
from Cork City. His two solo albums, Top of Coom (1990) and Cnoc Bu (2009),
display a strong and distinct style of flute playing. Conal has also recorded and
performed with the Raw Bar Collective, alongside Benny McCarthy and Dave
Sheridan. Conal helped to establish, organize, and teaches at Cruinni na
bhFliit. Conal has also recently released a useful handbook about traditional
flute techniques and style ( Grda 2011).
Lisa OSullivan is a fiddle player from Freemount, Co. Cork. She works as an
artist, educator, and part-time professional musician in the Cork City area.
Alongside her brother, Michael OSullivan, Lisa is a founding member of the
group, the Cil All-Stars.
Michael OSullivan is a banjo player from Freemount, Co. Cork. Michael is a
founding member and frequently performs with the Cil All-Stars.
John Reid (b. 1970) was born into a well-known musical family in Inch, Co.
Clare. Many of Johns family are pipers and dancers. John has lived and worked
in Cork for several years as an engineer and professional musician. He currently
works on his land and makes uilleann pipes.
Seamus Sands (b. 1963) is a fiddle player from Newry, Co. Down. He has lived,
raised his family, and worked as an engineer in Cork for more than twenty years.
Seamus has recently learned how to make fiddles, apprenticing and working
under the tutelage Jeremie Legrand. Seamus also released an album in 2013 with
the flute player Dermot Rafferty entitled The Green Bunch of Joy: Traditional
Music from Armagh and Down. On a personal note, when I first decided to learn
the fiddle, Seamus was extremely encouraging and helpful. On several occasions,
Seamus invited me over to his house for tea, food, and to play and learn new
fiddle tunes. He provided excellent advice and direction on how to get started
learning the fiddle, and recorded many interesting tunes for me to learn at home.
His passion for traditional music and fiddle playing is infectious.
Niall Vallely (b. 1970) is a concertina player and teacher from Armagh, and is
well-known for his innovative and creative work as a musician and composer. He
337
Event/Organization:
www.thesession.org, founder
Communication type:
Dates:
E-mail communications
2009-2012
E-mail communication
29/11/2010
Personal interview
21/3/2011
Personal interview
18/3/2011
and administrator
John Rynne
Barry Cogan
Hammy
Cruinni na bhFliit
Hamilton
communications
2010-2013
director
Siobhn
N Chonarin
education officer
E-mail communications
Fearghal
Corner House
MacGobhann
Aidan
O'Halloran
Tony Lawless
Dale Wisely
www.tradconnect.com,
founder and administrator
www.chiffandfipple.com,
founder and administrator
338
2011-2013
Personal interview
9/8/2011
Personal interview
08/12/11
E-mail communications
2011-2012
E-mail communications
2011-2012
Appendix C
Fieldwork Locations and Experiences
This appendix provides some further background information about my various
fieldwork experiences. I briefly discuss music-making in Cork City, and my
fieldwork experiences in sessions and the Douglas CC branch. I conclude with
some details of my internet fieldwork.
School
Festivals
Sessions
Summer
Fieldwork Sites:
Dec. 2011).
Informal observations at: pub, house, and festival sessions in Cork
and throughout Ireland.
Willie Clancy Summer School: Miltown Malbay, Co. Clare (July
2010).
Cruinni na bhFliit (The Flute Meeting): Ballyvourney, Co. Cork
(Apr. 2010).
Ennis Trad Festival: Ennis, Co. Clare (Nov. 2010).
Munster Fleadh: Ballincollig, Co. Cork (July 2011).
Fleadh Cheoil na ireann, Co. Cavan (Aug. 2011).
Informal observations at the Cork Folk Festival, Baltimore Fiddle
Fair, Ballincollig Winter Festival, and Galway Arts Festival (June
Weekly
Classes
339
Since the 1960s, Irish traditional music in Cork City has changed significantly,
and for the better.
Sessions
Numerous regular weekly sessions occur in dozens of pubs in the Cork City area.
Some pubs host weekly sessions all around the year, such as Sin , the Corner
House, LV, Gables, Charlies, An Brg, Spailpn Fnach, An Ralt Derg3, and the
Long Valley. Countless other venues host sessions during the tourist summer
season or for special occasions. During my fieldwork, I attended sessions in
dozens of establishments, but primarily conducted observations in Sin and the
Corner House.
Sin
Sin is a pub located at 8 Coburg Street in Cork City centre, just north of the
river Lee. Sin has hosted weekly pub session for several decades. I interviewed
Unfortunately, An Ralt Derg, formally the Gateway, is now closed. During my fieldwork, I
participated and enjoyed many great sessions in this venue, particularly when playing
alongside Michael and Lisa OSullivan.
340
Aiden O'Halloran, Sin s pub manager, about the history of the pub and the
relationship between the music and the business (see also Rixon 2009). Aiden has
worked in Sin for more than a decade, and managed the pub for more than five
years. Aiden states that his relationship with the music and the pub is a labour of
love, and that he often hangs out in Sin when he is not working (OHalloran,
interview). Aiden also sings frequently at Sin during sessions and on other
occasions. Aiden suggests that because the sessions are open, Sin attracts an
international mix of visitors and musicians (OHalloran, interview).
Currently, Sin hosts regular sessions three nights a week, on Sunday (711:30PM), Tuesday (9:30PM-midnight), and Friday nights (7-midnight). The pub
employs two or three musicians to stabilize the session, and different musicians
host the session depending on the night of the week. Sessions in Sin can
involve anywhere between three and approximately a dozen musicians. Because
Sin is narrow and small, sessions can be quite cramped and crowded.
Photograph by author
Polkas, slides, and marches were also commonly played during this Tuesday session. Around the
world, reels and jigs are the standard tunes played in sessions. Seamus learned many
341
Corner House
Also located on Coburg Street, the Corner House pub has hosted regular Irish
traditional music sessions for nearly twenty years. Fearghal MacGobhann bought
the pub in 1994, and the Corner House has been a family run establishment ever
since. Music has played an important role in the pub right from the beginning.
Before buying the Corner House, Fearghal co-owned and ran the Spailpn Fnach
in the late 1980s and early 90s.7 In opening the Spailpn Fnach and the Corner
House, Fearghal aimed to establish a county pub in the city centre. Fearghal
marches from playing sessions and with other musicians in Ulster. Seamus has also lived in
Co. Cork for more than twenty years, and has absorbed much of the local repertoire of polkas
and slides. Conal is well-known for his playing of polkas and slides, and commonly starts sets
of these tune types.
5
In order to be inclusive of the other musicians, Seamus and Conal usually only played a couple
sets of more obscure or original tunes throughout the night. After hearing Conals newly
composed tunes each week, Seamus eventually learned these compositions and played along
with Conal in the session. Most of the other musicians would just listening during the more
obscure tunes.
6
Polkas and slides are also commonly played in Sin , depending on who is leading and playing
in the session.
7
After Fearghal sold the Spailpn Fnach, the new owners retained the pub as a venue for Irish
traditional music sessions. The Spailpn is another pub in Cork City with a long history of
music-making, and remains a popular place for traditional musicians to play tunes.
342
believes that focusing on music helped to establish this type of atmosphere in his
pub (MacGobhann, interview). Although Fearghal is a businessman, he is also an
enthusiast of Irish traditional music. Fearghal grew up listening to music in
County Sligo, and he discusses his reasons for hosting music in his pub so
frequently throughout the years:
I get entertained by some of the best Ive known and
Ive been subjected to some great music I suppose at
the end of the day we are a business, but from my
perspective, I decided to take a shot working for myself
principally because pub trade never gave great pay or
decent working conditions. So I found myself
compelled to create my own perfect working
environment, and a huge facet of that is being
entertained while Im at work by great music and great
people. And fortunately, there are enough people around
who enjoy the same kind of atmosphere to make it work
(MacGobhann, interview).
Photograph by author
343
The Corner house hosts traditional music sessions every Tuesday and
Wednesday evening from 9:30-midnight, and every first Friday of the month
from approximately 5:30-8:30PM. Fearghal suggests that the first Friday session
is particular popular amongst musical families, since children and young teens
are no longer allowed in pubs after 9PM (MacGobhann, interview). In addition to
Irish traditional music, the pub also hosts other live music events, including
blues, old-time, and bluegrass music.
Fearghal employs three traditional musicians to lead the sessions on
Tuesday, Wednesday, and Friday nights. Aidan Coffey, Mick Daly and Geraldine
OCallaghan lead the Tuesday session, while Johnny McCarthy, Con Fada
Drisceoil, and Pat Ahern (members of the Four Star Trio) lead the Wednesday
night session. Con and Pat also lead the first Friday sessions along with Matt
Cranitch. Sliabh Luachra repertoire is often played in the Corner House,
particularly on Fridays. The Corner House is more spacious than Sin , and the
first Friday sessions can host upwards to twenty traditional musicians. The first
Friday sessions are particularly lively, and often comprised of more the a dozen
musicians (mostly fiddle, banjo, and accordion players).
Barry is the current, while Aislinn was the branchs first Cathaoirleach.
This is a Gaelscoil (an Irish language-medium school) in Douglas, Co. Cork.
10
344
already familiar with Irish traditional music and many of the tunes taught in class,
I took the opportunity to observe basic fiddle techniques, such as how to hold the
bow correctly and how to execute cuts. At the end of class, using my iPhone I
recorded the teacher playing the tune in order to practice at home. I also
purchased the CC tune book, Seinn Port 112 Great Session Tunes (Kearney
n.d.), used by many of the Douglas CC members. (This is not the regular CC
tune book, Foinn Seisin, but a local publication). In my fiddle class, we learned
approximately one tune a week and I generally used the book as a reminder of
which tunes to practice. While I referenced the book often, I primarily learned
and practiced aurally. Other students used the book during class in order to learn
the tune the teacher demonstrated.
345
Total Responses: 14
Total Responses Analysed: 14
Discussion Board #2 Questions of community
Original post by researcher: 21 April 2011
Discussed until: 24 April 2011
Total Responses: 88
Total Responses Analysed: 6312
11
Only some of the comments were usable for analysis; Of the 164 total responses, 15 of the
posts were my own responses, 15 comments were excluded because members indicated that
they did not want their comments used in the study. Additionally, 64 comments did not refer to
the original topic. Ultimately, while this was an interesting part of my field research on
thesession, I determined that this area of research was slightly beyond the scope this thesis.
12
Of the 88 total responses, 5 responses were my own posts and 20 statements were not related to
the original post.
346
Appendix D
Interview Questions
The italics below indicate the primary questions asked to all interviewees. The
twenty interviewees were encouraged and allowed to discuss matters at length
without interruption. Back-up questions (which I have listed below in
parentheses) were asked if the interviewees needed clarification or sought more
detail. In my experience, these auxiliary questions were often not necessary;
interviewees often responded to my primary questions in such detail that the
back-up questions were superfluous. This questionnaire was not given to
interviewees before, during, or after our meetings; rather I carried a copy along
with me in order to keep myself focused and to help to guide the conversation.
All interviews were audio recorded and transcribed at a later time.
Musicality:
Who are some of your favourite traditional musicians? What makes these
players standout from others? (Are there skills are very exceptional? How
is it possible to learn or develop these skills? Do you model your own
playing around these skills? What does it mean to be musical within
traditional Irish music?)
In which way, or ways, did you learn your first tunes? (Do you still learn
in this way? Why do you enjoy this method/find it effective? Are there
you learn to physically play the music? Do you still do this to progress
Exploring opinions:
Would you say you have learned Irish music in a disciplined or organized
Do you find Irish music difficult to learn? (If yes, what is difficult? Are
there strategies to learn this?)
Other questions13:
Have you ever taken music lessons? (If so, for how long? Did you find
them useful? Why did you stop?)
Has notation played a role in your musical development? (If so, How?)
Was Irish traditional music taught in your school? (If, so elaborate).
Have festivals played a role in your musical development?
What are your thoughts on learning in sessions? (Have you ever attended
specifically in order to learn? What is learned in sessions? Does playing
in sessions affect you playing?)
13
Many of these questions were not necessary to ask during the interview, as these precise issues
emerged naturally within the interviewees responses to my initial questions above.
348
Bibliography
Ahern, Pat. 1999. Fiche Bliain ag Fs: A personal account of twenty years of
change & tradition. In Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads
Conference Tradition and Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by
Fintan Vallely, Hammy Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty, 1518. Dublin: Whinstone.
Alerby, Eva and Cecilia Ferm. 2005. Learning Music: Embodied Experience in
the Life World. Philosophy of Music Education Review 13(2): 177-185.
Anderson, Lawrence. 1975. The Effects of Music Literature in Developing
Aesthetic Sensitivity to Music. Journal of Research in Music Education
23(1): 78-84.
Anderson, William M. and Patricia Shehan Campbell. 1996. Multicultural
Perspectives in Music Education. Reston, Virginia: Music Educators
National Conference.
Anick, Peter. 1994. P.J. Hayes: Fifty Years with the Tulla Ceil Band. Irish
Fiddle (Online Journal). www.irishfiddle.com/pj_hayes_interview.html
[accessed 27 July 2005].
Arias, Ricardo. 1998. From the Margins of the Periphery: Music and
Technology at the Outskirts of the West: A Personal View. Leonardo
Music Journal 8:49-54.
Atay, Ahmet. 2009. Identities in motion: Cyberspace and diasporic queer male
bodies in the context of globalization. PhD thesis, University of Illinois.
Austin, James R. 1990. Competition: Is Music Education the Loser? Music
Educators Journal 76(6): 21-25.
Babiracki, Carol M. 1997. Whats the Difference? Reflections on Gender and
Research in Village India. in Shadows in the Field: New Perspectives for
Fieldwork in Ethnomusicology, edited by Gregory F. Barz and Timothy J.
Cooley, 121-138. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
Baily, John. 2011. Music Is in Our Blood: Gujarati Muslim Musicians in the
UK. in Learning, Teaching, and Musical Identity: Voices Across
Cultures, edited by Lucy Green, 109-127. Bloomington: Indiana
University Press.
------. 2001. Learning to Perform as a Research Technique in
349
------. 2000. How Musical We Are: John Blacking on Music, Education, and
Cultural Understanding. Journal of Research in Music Education 48(4):
336-359.
------. 1991. Lessons from the World: A Cross-Cultural Guide to Music Teaching
and Learning. New York: Maxwell Macmillan International.
Carolan, Nicholas. 2008. Foreword: The Influence of Francis ONeill on Irish
Traditional Music. in Chief ONeills Sketchy Recollections of an
Eventful Live in Chicago, edited by Ellen Skerrett and Mary Lesch, xiii
xiv. Dingle: Brandon, Northwestern University Press.
------. 1999. Irish music to 1600AD traditions and innovations. In
Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads Conference Tradition and
Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, Hammy
Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty, 52-55. Dublin: Whinstone.
------. 1997. A Harvest Saved: Francis ONeill and Irish Music in Chicago.
Cork: Ossian Publications.
------. 1986. Irish Traditional Music. Dublin: ITMA.
Carson, Ciaran. 2008. In Praise of the Ceili Band. Journal of Music in Ireland,
available [www.journalofmusic.com/focus/praise-ceili-band, accessed 11
June 2012].
------. 1996. Last Nights Fun: A Book About Irish Traditional Music. London:
Jonathan Cape.
------. 1986. Pocket Guide to Irish Traditional Music. Belfast: Appletree Press.
Cashman, Ray. 2009. Storytelling and the Construction of Local Identities on the
Irish Border. in Anil an Bhil Bheo: Orality and Modern Irish Culture,
edited by Nessa Cronin, Sen Crosson and John Eastlake, 115-125.
Newcastle upon Tyne: Cambridge Scholars Publishing.
Cawley, Jessica. 2013. Musical Development in Irish Traditional Music: An
Exploration of Family Influences. Ethnomusicology Ireland 2/3: 95-111.
------. 2008. Pub Sessions as Means of Transmission in Traditional Irish Music:
The Public Acquisition of Technical Skills and Repertoire on the Irish
Flute. M.A. Thesis, University of Limerick.
------. 2005. Investigating the ways the Irish learn music. B.M. Thesis,
University of New Hampshire.
Chaiklin, Seth. 1993. Understanding the social scientific practice of
Understanding practice. in Understanding practice: Perspectives on
355
activity and context, edited by Seth Chaiklin and Jean Lave, 377-401.
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Chaiklin, Seth and Jean Lave, eds. 1993. Understanding practice: Perspectives
on activity and context. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Chanan, Michael. 2002. Televisions Problem with (Classical) Music. Popular
Music 21(3): 367-74.
------. 1995. Repeated Takes: A Short History of Recording and Its Effects on
Music. London: Verso.
Chenoweth, Gene. 1947. What Shall We Do about Competition? Music
Educators Journal 33(3): 20-24.
Clarke, Eric F. 2003. Music and Psychology. in The Cultural Study of Music: A
Critical Introduction, edited by Martin Clayton, Trevor Herbert, and
Richard Middleton, 113-123. New York and London: Routledge.
Clawson, Mary Ann. 1999. Masculinity and Skill Acquisition in the Adolescent
Rock Band. Popular Music 18(1): 99-114.
Clayton, Martin. 2003. Comparing Music, Comparing Musicology. in The
Cultural Study of Music: A Critical Introduction, edited by Martin
Clayton, Trevor Herbert, and Richard Middleton, 57-68. New York and
London: Routledge.
Clayton, Martin, Herbert, Trevor and Richard Middleton, eds. 2003. The Cultural
Study of Music: A Critical Introduction. New York and London:
Routledge.
Comhaltas Ceoltir ireann (no author). 2004. Development Programme for the
Irish Traditional Arts. Monkstown, Dublin: CC.
------ 2000. Seisin. Pamphlet, Monkstown: CC.
------. 1998. Promoting the Culture and Arts of Ireland at Home and Abroad.
Monkstown, Dublin: CC.
Conway, Colleen. 2000. Gender and Musical Instrument Choice: A
Phenomenological Investigation. Bulletin of the Council for Research in
Music Education 146:1-17.
Coogan, Tim Pat, ed. 1983. Ireland and the Arts. London: Namara Press.
Coohill, Joseph. 2000. Ireland: A Short History. Oxford: Oneworld.
Cook, Nicholas. 2006. Playing God: Creativity, analysis, and aesthetic
inclusion. in MusicalCreativity: Multidisciplinary Research in Theory
and Practice, edited by Irne Delige and Geraint A. Wiggins, 9-24. Hove
356
Cranitch, Matt. 2006. Pdraig O'Keeffe and The Sliabh Luachra Fiddle
Tradition. PhD thesis, University of Limerick.
------. 2003. Denis Murphy and Julia Clifford: The Waivers of Gneeveguilla.
Riada Memorial Lecture 13. Cork: Irish Traditional Music Society,
University College Cork.
------. 2001. The Irish Fiddle Book: The Art of Traditional Fiddle-Playing, 4th
ed. Cork: Ossian Publications.
------. 2000. Irish Session Tunes The Red Book: 100 Irish Dance Tunes and
Airs. Cork: Ossian Publications.
Crawford, Rene. 2010. Valuing technology in the music classroom: results
from a recent case study indicate why technology should be used in
education. Victorian Journal of Music Education 1: 29-35.
Crehan, Junior. 1977. Junior Crehan Remembers. Dal gCais 3: 72-75.
Crehan, Kevin. 2003. Bobby Casey: Virtuoso of West Clare. Irish Fiddle,
available [www.irishfiddle.com/caseyessay.html., accessed 24 May 2009].
Cronin, Nessa, Crosson, Sen, and John Eastlake, eds. 2009. Anil an Bhil
Bheo: Orality and Modern Irish Culture, Newcastle upon Tyne:
Cambridge Scholars Publishing.
Cross, Ian. 2003. Music and Biocultural Evolution. in The Cultural Study of
Music: A Critical Introduction, edited by Martin Clayton, Trevor Herbert,
and Richard Middleton, 19-30. New York and London: Routledge.
Crotty, Angela. n.d. Martin Junior Crehan: Musical Compositions and Memories
1908-1998. Lahinch: Angela Crotty.
Csikszentmihalyi, Mihaly. 2000. Beyond Boredom and Anxiety: Experiencing
Flow in Work and Play (The 25th Anniversary Edition). San Francisco:
Jossey-Bass Publishers.
------. 1996. Creativity: Flow and the Psychology of Discovery and Invention.
New York: Harper Perennial.
Cullen, Deirdre. 2002. Enculturation, Music Education and Instrumental
Learning in the Traditional Irish Music Experience: a case study of one
Gaelscoil. M.A. thesis, St. Patricks College, University of Dublin.
Curran, Catherine. 1999. Changing audiences for traditional Irish music. In
Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads Conference Tradition and
Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, Hammy
Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty, 56-63. Dublin: Whinstone.
358
Davies, Lloyd. 2008. Informal Learning: A New Model for Making Sense of
Experience. Hampshire: Gower Publishing Limited.
Davis, Martha Ellen. 1994. Bi-Musicality in the Cultural Configuration of the
Caribbean. Black Music Research Journal 14(2): 145-160.
Davis, Sharon G. 2011. Fostering a Musical Say: Identity, Expression, and
Decision Making in a US School Ensemble. in Learning, Teaching, and
Musical Identity: Voices Across Cultures, edited by Lucy Green, 267-80.
Bloomington: Indiana University Press.
Delamont, Sara. 2004. "Ethnography and participant observation." in Qualitative
Research Practice, edited by Clive Seale, Giampietro Gobo, Jaber F
Gubrium, and David Silverman, 217-229. London: Sage.
Delige, Irne and Geraint A. Wiggins, eds. 2006. Musical Creativity:
Multidisciplinary Research in Theory and Practice. Hove and New York:
Psychology Press.
Denckla, Martha B. 1990. The Paradox of the Gifted/Impaired Child. in Music
and Child Development: The Biology of Music Making Proceedings of
the 1987 Denver Conference, edited by Frank Wilson and Franz
Roehmann, 227-240. St. Louis: MMB Music, Inc.
DeNora, Tia. 2002. The Everyday as Extraordinary: Response from Tia
DeNora. Action, Criticism, and Theory for Music Education 1(2): 2-8.
Deschnes, Bruno. 1998. Toward an Anthropology of Music Listening.
International Review of the Aesthetics and Sociology of Music 29(2):135153.
Devine, Patrick F. and Harry White, eds. 1996. Irish Musical Studies 4. Dublin:
Four.
Dewey, John. 1997. Experience and Education. New York: Simon and Schuster.
[Originally published 1938 by Kappa Delta Pi].
------. 1980. Art as Experience. New York: Perigee Books. [Originally published
1934].
Dibben, Nicola. 2003. Musical Materials, Perception, and Listening. in The
Cultural Study of Music: A Critical Introduction, edited by Martin
Clayton, Trevor Herbert, and Richard Middleton, 193-203. New York and
London: Routledge.
Dionyssiou, Zoe. 2011. Music-Learning and the Formation of Local Identity
through the Philharmonic Society Wind Bands of Corfu. in Learning,
359
363
Herndon, Marcia and Norma McLeod. 1983. Field Manual for Ethnomusicology.
Norwood: Norwood Editions.
Herskovits, Melville J. 1948. Man and his works. New York: Knopf.
Hewitt, Allan. 2009. Musical Styles as Communities of Practice Challenges for
learning, teaching and assessment of music in higher education. Arts and
Humanities in Higher Education 8(3): 329-337.
Hinz, Bob. 1995. Transcribing for Greater Musicality. Music Educators Journal
82(1): 25-28+63.
Hodkinson, Phil and Heather Hodkinson. 2004. A Constructive Critique of
Communities of Practice: Moving Beyond Lave and Wenger in
Understanding Workplace Learning. OVAL Research Paper (Sydney:
University of Technology).
Honigsfeld, Andrea and Rita Dunn. 2003. High School Male and Female
Learning-Style Similarities and Differences in Diverse Nations. The
Journal of Educational Research 96(4): 195-206.
Hood, Mantle. 1960. The Challenge of Bi-Musicality. Ethnomusicology 4(2):
55-59.
Hopkins, Pandora. 1982. Aural Thinking. in Cross-Cultural Perspectives on
Music, edited by Robert Falck and Timothy Rice, 143-161. Toronto:
University of Toronto Press.
Hulse, Steward H. 1990. Comparative Psychology and Music Perception. In
Music and Child Development: The Biology of Music Making
Proceedings of the 1987 Denver Conference, edited by Frank Wilson and
Franz Roehmann, 139-156. St. Louis: MMB Music, Inc.
Hutchins, Edwin. 1993. Learning to navigate. in Understanding practice:
Perspectives on activity and context, edited by Seth Chaiklin and Jean
Lave, 35-63.
Hynes, Eugene. 2009. Making sense of Mistakes in Oral Sources. in Anil an
Bhil Bheo: Orality and Modern Irish Culture, edited by Nessa Cronin,
Sen Crosson and John Eastlake, 149-58. Newcastle upon Tyne:
Cambridge Scholars Publishing.
Jaffurs, Sheri E. 2011. SIMPhonic Island: Exploring Musical Identity and
Learning in Virtual Space. in Learning, Teaching, and Musical Identity:
Voices Across Cultures, edited by Lucy Green, 295-307. Bloomington:
Indiana University Press.
367
on activity and context, edited by Seth Chaiklin and Jean Lave, 3-32.
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
------. 1982. A Comparative Approach to Educational Forms and Learning
Processes. Anthropology & Education Quarterly 13(2): 181-187.
Lave, Jean and Etienne Wenger. 1991. Situated Learning: Legitimate Peripheral
Participation. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Lee, Zara. 2001. Paddy Keenan: King of the Pipers. The Celtic Cafe, [available
www.celticcafe.com/archive/Music/keenan/index.htm accessed 20 Oct
2011].
Lehman, Paul R., William E. English, and Gerard L. Knieter, eds. 1985.
Becoming Human Through Music: The Wesleyan Symposium on the
Perspectives of Social Anthropology in the Teaching and Learning of
Music. Reston: Music Educators National Conference.
Levine, Harold G. 1993. Context and scaffolding in developmental studies of
mother-child problem-solving dyads. in Understanding practice:
Perspectives on activity and context, edited by Seth Chaiklin and Jean
Lave, 306-26. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Lomax, Alan. 1977. Cantometrics: A Method in Musical Anthropology. Berkeley,
California: Extension Media Center.
------. 1959. Folk Song Style. American Anthropologist 61: 927-54.
Lord, Albert B. 2000. The Singer of Tales. 2nd ed. Cambridge: Harvard University
Press.
Lysloff, Ren T.A. 2003. Musical Community on the Internet: An On-Line
Ethnography. Cultural Anthropology 18 (2): 233-263.
Mac Aoidh, Caoimhn. 1999. The Critical Role of Education in the
Development of Traditional Music in the Republic of Ireland. in
Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads Conference Tradition and
Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, Hammy
Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty, 107-111. Dublin: Whinstone.
------. 1999b. Cairdeas na bhFidlir. in Companion to Irish Traditional Music,
edited by Fintan Vallely, 49. Cork: Cork University Press.
------. 1997. Donegal: A Voice in the Wilderness, or the Voice of Reason? in
Blas: The Local Accent in Irish Traditional Music, edited by Thrse
Smith and Michel Silleabhin, 67-72. Irish World Music Centre,
University of Limerick.
371
------. 1994. Between the Jigs and the Reels: The Donegal Fiddle Tradition.
Leitrim: Drumlin.
Mac Mahon, Tony. 1999. Music of the powerful and majestic past. in
Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads Conference Tradition and
Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, Hammy
Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty, 112-120. Dublin: Whinstone.
------ 1978. Irish Traditional Music. Dublin: Folens.
Maddy, Joseph E. 1936. The Competition-Festival of the Future. Music
Educators Journal 23(3): 17-18+20.
Mallinson, Dave, ed. 1997. 100 Evergreen Irish Session Tunes. Cleckheaton,
West Yorkshire: Dave Mallinson Publications.
------. 1995a. 100 Enduring Irish Session Tunes. Cleckheaton, West Yorkshire:
Dave Mallinson Publications.
------. 1995b. 100 Essential Irish Session Tunes. Cleckheaton, West Yorkshire:
Dave Mallinson Publications.
Malm, Krister. 1992. The Music Industry. in Ethnomusicology: An
Introduction, edited by Helen Myers, 349-364. New York: MacMillan
Press.
Manuel, Peter. 1988. Popular Musics of the Non-Western World. Oxford: Oxford
University Press.
Marsh, Kathryn. 2011. The Permeable Classroom: Learning, Teaching, and
Musical Identity in a Remote Australian Aboriginal Homelands School
in Learning, Teaching, and Musical Identity: Voices Across Cultures,
edited by Lucy Green, 20-32. Bloomington: Indiana University Press.
Marshall, Christopher. 1982. Towards a Comparative Aesthetic of Music. in
Cross-Cultural Perspectives on Music, edited by Robert Falck and
Timothy Rice, 162-173. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
McAllester, David P. 1985. The Wesleyan Symposium. in Becoming Human
Through Music: The Wesleyan Symposium on the Perspectives of Social
Anthropology in the Teaching and Learning of Music, edited by Paul R.
Lehman, William E. English and Gerard L. Knieter, 1-4. Reston: Music
Educators National Conference.
McCann, Anthony. 2001. All That Is Not Given Is Lost: Irish Traditional Music,
Copyright, and Common Property. Ethnomusicology 45(1): 89-106.
McCann, May. 1995. Music and Politics in Ireland: the Specificity of the Folk
372
and Modern Irish Culture, edited by Nessa Cronin, Sen Crosson and
John Eastlake, 67-86. Newcastle upon Tyne: Cambridge Scholars
Publishing.
Noll, William. 1997. Selecting Partners: Questions of Personal Choice and
Problems of History in Fieldwork and Its Interpretation. in Shadows in
the Field: New Perspectives for Fieldwork in Ethnomusicology, edited by
Gregory F. Barz and Timothy J. Cooley, 163-188. Oxford: Oxford
University Press.
OBoyle, Sean. 1974. The Irish Song Tradition. Dublin: Gilbert Dalton.
OBrien, George. 1936. The Four Green Fields. Dublin: Talbot Press.
OBrien, Sarah. 2009. Narrative encounters with the Irish in Birmingham. In
Anil an Bhil Bheo: Orality and Modern Irish Culture, edited by Nessa
Cronin, Sen Crosson and John Eastlake, 159-71. Newcastle upon Tyne:
Cambridge Scholars Publishing.
Canainn, Toms. 1996. A Lifetime of Notes: The Memoirs of Toms Canainn.
Cork: The Collins Press.
------. 1993. Traditional Music in Ireland, 2nd ed. Cork: Ossian.
OConnor, Catherine. 2009. The Smell of Her Apron: Issues of Gender and
Religious Identity in the Oral Testimonies of Church of Ireland Women
in Ferns, 1945-1965. in Anil an Bhil Bheo: Orality and Modern Irish
Culture, edited by Nessa Cronin, Sen Crosson and John Eastlake, 127136. Newcastle upon Tyne: Cambridge Scholars Publishing.
OConnor, Mick. 1999. Dublin Pipers Club. in Companion to Irish Traditional
Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, 110-111.Cork: Cork University Press.
O'Connor, Nuala. 2001. Bringing it all Back Home: The influence of Irish music
at home and overseas, 2nd ed. Dublin: Merlin Publishing.
Crualaoich, Gearid. 2009. Orality and Modern Irish Culture: A Personal
Strand of the Weave. in Anil an Bhil Bheo: Orality and Modern Irish
Culture, edited by Nessa Cronin, Sen Crosson and John Eastlake, 15-24.
Newcastle upon Tyne: Cambridge Scholars Publishing.
O'Flynn, John. 2011. Performance, Transmission, and Identity among Irelands
New Generation of Traditional Musicians. in Learning, Teaching, and
Musical Identity: Voices Across Cultures, edited by Lucy Green, 252-66
Bloomington: Indiana University Press.
------. 2009. The Irishness of Irish Music. Surrey: Ashgate.
377
Grda, Conal. 2011. An Fheadog Mhor: Irish Traditional Flute Technique. Cil
Aodha: Daorla Publications.
hAllmhurin, Gearid. 2008. A Pocket History of Irish Traditional Music, 3rd
edition. Dublin: O'Brien Press.
O'Keeffe, Mire. 1999. Tradition versus change: the Irish button accordion. In
Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads Conference Tradition and
Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, Hammy
Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty, 160-165. Dublin: Whinstone.
Laoire, Lillis. 2009. Parallel Songlines: James Joyces The Dead and Toms
Criomhthains An tOilenach. in Anil an Bhil Bheo: Orality and
Modern Irish Culture, edited by Nessa Cronin, Sen Crosson and John
Eastlake, 189-203. Newcastle upon Tyne: Cambridge Scholars Publishing.
------. 2008. Re-imagining Tradition: Riada's Musical Legacy in the 21st
Century. Riada Memorial Lecture 20. Cork: The Irish Traditional
Music Society, University College Cork.
------. 1999. Dearnad sa Bhrochn: Tradition and Change in Dance in a
Donegal Community. In Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads
Conference Tradition and Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by
Fintan Vallely, Hammy Hamiltion, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty,
166-174. Dublin: Whinstone.
Murch, Labhrs. 1987. An Rd Seo Romhainn A Future for Irish
Traditional Music. Riada Memorial Lecture 2. Cork: University
College Traditional Music Society.
ONeill, Francis. 1910. Irish folk Music: A Fascinating Hobby. Chicago: Regan.
------. 1907. The Dance Music of Ireland: O'Neill's 1001. Dublin: Waltons.
------. 1903. O'Neill's Music of Ireland: Eighteen Hundred and Fifty Melodies.
Reprinted by Mel Bay Publications.
Ong, Walter J. 1982. Orality and Literacy: The Technologizing of the Word.
London and New York: Methuen.
Riada, Peadar. 1999. Sen Riada. in Companion to Irish Traditional
Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, 288-9. Cork: Cork University Press.
Riada Sen. 1982. Our Musical Heritage. Edited by Thomas Kinsella,
Portlaoise: The Dolmen Press.
O'Shea, Helen. 2008. The Making of Irish Traditional Music. Cork: Cork
University Press.
378
------. 2006-7. Getting to the Heart of the Music: Idealizing Music Community
and Irish Traditional Music Sessions. Journal of the Society for
Musicology in Ireland (2): 1-18.
------. 2005. Foreign Bodies in the River of Sound: Seeking Identity and Irish
Traditional Music. PhD thesis, Victoria University of Technology.
Ostwald, Peter F. 1990. Music in the Organization of Childhood Experience and
Emotion. in Music and Child Development: The Biology of Music
Making Proceedings of the 1987 Denver Conference, edited by Frank
Wilson and Franz Roehmann, 11-27. St. Louis: MMB Music, Inc.
Silleabhin, Mchel. 2004. CEOL NA nUASAL: Sean Riada and the
Search for a Native Irish Art Music. Riada Memorial Lecture 15.
Cork: The Irish Traditional Music Society, University College Cork.
------. 1999. Crossroads or twin track? Innovation and tradition in Irish
traditional music. in Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads Conference
Tradition and Innovation in Traditional Irish Music, edited by Fintan
Vallely, Hammy Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz Doherty, 175-199.
Dublin: Whinstone.
------. 1993. The Melodic Tradition of Ireland by James R. Cowdery.
Ethnomusicology 37(1): 109-112.
------. 1987. Innovation and Tradition in the Music of Tommie Potts. PhD
thesis, Department of Social Anthropology, Queens University Belfast.
------. 1981. Irish Music Defined. The Crane Bag 5(2): 83-87.
OSullivan, Donal Joseph. 2001. Carolan The Life and Times of an Irish
Harper, 2nd ed. Cork: Ossian.
Oxford English Dictionary Online. www.dictionary.oed.com.
Pea, Roy and John Seely Brown. 1993. Series forward. in Understanding
practice: Perspectives on activity and context, edited by Seth Chaiklin
and Jean Lave, vii-ix. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Parkes, Richard. 1992. Scottish Bagpipes. in Traditional Music: Whose Music?
Proceedings of a Co-operation North Conference, edited by Peter
McNamee, 45-7. Belfast: Institute of Irish Studies, Queen's University
Belfast.
Peoples, Tommy. 1994. Foreword. in Between the Jigs and the Reels: The
Donegal Fiddle Tradition, edited and written by Caoimhn Mac Aoidh, 714. Leitrim: Drumlin.
379
Qureshi, Regula Burckhardt. 1995. Sufi Music of India and Pakistan: Sound,
Context, and Meaning in Qawwali. Chicago: The University of Chicago
Press.
Rapuano, Deborah L. 2005. Every Drop Hollows the Stone: An Ethnographic
Study of Traditional Irish Music Pub Sessions. PhD thesis, Loyola
University: Chicago.
Reavy, Ed. 1996. The Collection Compositions of Ed Reavy. Leitrim: Green Grass
Music.
Reay, Diane. 2004. It's All Becoming a Habitus': Beyond the Habitual Use of
Habitus in Educational Research. British Journal of Sociology of
Education 25(4): 431-444.
Rebollo-Sborgi, Francesca. 1994. The Musicality of Oral Performance: The
Case of Tinjn Shdia and the Musical Expression of Urban Identity.
Asian Music 26(1): 9-51.
Regelski, Thomas Adam and J. Terry Gates, eds. 2009. Music Education for
Changing Times: Guiding Visions for Practice. New York and London:
Springer.
Reily, Suzel Ana. 2003. Ethnomusicology and the Internet. Yearbook for
Traditional Music 35: 187-192.
Rheingold, Howard. 1993. The Virtual Community: Homesteading on the
Electronic Frontier. New York: Harper Perennial.
Rice, Timothy. 2003. The Ethnomusicology of Music Learning and Teaching.
College Music Symposium 43: 65-85.
------. 1997. Toward a Mediation of Field Methods and Field Experiences in
Ethnomusicology. in Shadows in the Field: New Perspectives for
Fieldwork in Ethnomusicology, edited by Gregory F. Barz and Timothy J.
Cooley, 101-120. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
------. 1995. Understanding and Producing the Variability of Oral Tradition:
Learning from a Bulgarian Bagpiper. The Journal of American Folklore
108(429): 266-276.
------. 1994. May it Fill Your Soul: Experiencing Bulgarian Music. Chicago:
University of Chicago Press.
------. 1985. Music Learned but not Taught: The Bulgarian Case. in Becoming
Human Through Music: The Wesleyan Symposium on the Perspectives of
Social Anthropology in the Teaching and Learning of Music, edited by
381
Irish
Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, Hammy Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz
Doherty, 200-205. Dublin: Whinstone.
Schmidt-Wrenger, Barbara. 1985. Tshiyanda Na Ululi Boundaries of
Independence, Life, Music, and Education in Tshokwe Society, Angola,
Zaire. in Becoming Human Through Music: The Wesleyan Symposium on
the Perspectives of Social Anthropology in the Teaching and Learning of
Music, edited by Paul R. Lehman, William E. English, and Gerard L.
Knieter, 77-86. Reston: Music Educators National Conference.
Seale, Clive, Gobo, Giampietro, Gubrium Jaber F., and David Silverman, eds.
2004. Qualitative Research Practice. London: Sage.
Seeger, Anthony. 1992. Ethnography of Music. in Ethnomusicology: An
Introduction, edited by Helen Myers, 88-109. New York: MacMillan
Press.
Seeger, Charles. 1977. Studies in Musicology 1935-1975. Berkeley: University of
California Press.
Shanklin, Eugenia. 1981. Two Meanings and Uses of Tradition. Journal of
Anthropological Research 37(1): 71-89.
Shehan, Patricia K. 1990. Movement in the Music Education of Children. In
Music and Child Development: The Biology of MusicMaking
Proceedings of the 1987 Denver Conference, edited by Frank Wilson and
Franz Roehmann, 354-65. St. Louis: MMB Music, Inc.
Shelemay, Kay Kaufman. 1997. The Ethnomusicologist, Ethnographic Method,
and the Transmission of Tradition. in Shadows in the Field: New
Perspectives for Fieldwork in Ethnomusicology, edited by Gregory F.
Barz and Timothy J. Cooley, 190-204. Oxford: Oxford University Press.
Shepherd, John. 2003. Music and Social Categories. in The Cultural Study of
Music: A Critical Introduction, edited by Martin Clayton, Trevor Herbert,
and Richard Middleton, 69-79. New York and London: Routledge.
Shetler, Donald J. 1990. The Inquiry into Prenatal Musical Experience: A Report
383
Smith, Nancy. 1987. Music Education in Ireland: The Meeting of the Waters.
Music Educators Journal 74(4): 48-51.
Smith, Thrse. 1999. The challenge of bringing oral traditions of music into an
academic teaching environment. in Crosbhealach an Cheoil the
Crossroads Conference Tradition and Innovation in Traditional Irish
Music, edited by Fintan Vallely, Hammy Hamilton, Eithne Vallely, and Liz
Doherty, 206-210. Dublin: Whinstone.
------. 1997. Preface: From the Local to the Global, and back. in Blas: The
Local Accent in Irish Traditional Music, edited by Thrse Smith and
Michel Silleabhin, 1-7. Irish World Music Centre, University of
Limerick.
Smith, Thrse and Michel Silleabhin, eds. 1997. Blas: The Local Accent
in Irish Traditional Music. Limerick: Irish World Music Centre.
Smyth, Gerry. 2005. Noisy Island: A Short History of Irish Popular Music. Cork:
Cork University Press.
Snosniak, Lauren A. 1990. From Tyro to Virtuoso: A Long-term Commitment to
Learning. in Music and Child Development: The Biology of Music
Making Proceedings of the 1987Denver Conference, edited by Frank
Wilson and Franz Roehmann, 274-90. St. Louis: MMB Music, Inc.
Society for Ethnomusicology. 1998. Position Statement on Ethical
Considerations. [available http://webdb.iu.edu/sem/scripts/aboutus/abou
tsem/positionstatements/position_statement_ethics.cfm, accessed 5 May
2011].
Solie, Ruth A. ed.1993. Musicology and Difference: Gender and Sexuality in
Music Scholarship. Berkeley: University of California Press.
Sols, Ted., ed. 2004. Performing Ethnomusicology: Teaching and Representation
in World Music Ensembles. Berkeley: University of California Press.
Sommers Smith, Sally K. 2001. Irish Traditional Music in a Modern World.
New Hibernia Review 5(2): 111-125.
------. 1999. Style and authenticity. in Companion to Irish Traditional Music,
edited by Fintan Vallely, 386-389. Cork: Cork University Press.
------. 1998. Landscape and Memory in Irish Traditional Music. New Hibernia
Review/Iris ireannach Nua 2(1): 132-144.
Squire, Kurt D., and Christine B. Johnson. 2000. Supporting Distributed
Communities of Practice with Interactive Television. Educational
385
Vallely, Fintan. 2008. Tuned Out: Traditional Music and Identity in Northern
Ireland. Cork: Cork University Press.
------. 2004a. Flute Routes to 21st-Century Ireland. PhD thesis, University
College Dublin.
------. 2004b. From Fifth Column to Pillar of Society Observations on the
Political Implications of Popular Revival and Education in Irish
Traditional Music in Modern Ireland. Riada Memorial Lecture 14.
Cork: Irish Traditional Music Society, University College Cork.
------. ed. 1999 Companion to Irish Traditional Music. Cork: Cork University
Press.
------. 1997. The migrant, the tourist the voyeur, the leprechaun... in Blas: The
Local Accent in Irish Traditional Music, edited by Thrse Smith and
Michel Silleabhin, 107-115. Irish World Music Centre, University of
Limerick.
------. 1992. Flute-player and Songwriter. in Traditional Music: Whose Music?
Proceedings of a Co-operation North Conference, edited by Peter
McNamee, 70-105. Belfast: Institute of Irish Studies, Queen's University
Belfast.
------. 1987. Timber: The Flute Tutor. Miltown Malbay: Long Note.
Vallely, Fintan, Hamilton, Hammy, Vallely, Eithne and Liz Doherty, eds. 1999.
Crosbhealach an Cheoil the Crossroads Conference Tradition and
Innovation in Traditional Irish Music. Dublin: Whinstone.
Vallely, Fintan, Charlie Piggott, and Nutan. 1998. The Blooming Meadows.
Dublin: Townhouse.
Varr, Margit and Arthur Mendel. 1940. Imponderable Elements of Musicality.
Music Quarterly 26(4): 446-455.
Veblen, Kari K. 1996. Truth, Perceptions, and Cultural Constructs in
Ethnographic Research: Music Teaching and Learning in Ireland.
Bulletin of the Council for Research in Music Education: 37-52.
------. 1991. Perceptions of Change and Stability in the Transmission of Irish
Traditional Music: An Examination of the Music Teachers Role. PhD
thesis, University of Wisconsin Madison.
Volman, Monique, ten Dam, Geert. 2007. Learning and the Development of
Social Identities in the Subjects Care and Technology. British
Educational Research Journal 33(6): 845-866.
388
Wade, Michael G. 1990. Motor Skills and the Making of Music. in Music and
Child Development: The Biology of Music Making Proceedings of the
1987 Denver Conference, edited by Frank Wilson and Franz Roehmann,
157-178. St. Louis: MMB Music, Inc.
Waldron, Janice. 2011. Locating Narratives in Postmodern Spaces: A Cyber
Ethnographic Field Study of Informal Music Learning in Online
Community. Action, Criticism, and Theory for Music Education 10(2):
31-60.
------. 2009a. How Adult Learners Learn Celtic Traditional Music: An
Exploratory Study. Music Education Research International 3: 54-68.
------. 2009b. Exploring a virtual music community of practice: Informal
music learning on the Internet. Journal of Music, Technology and
Education 2 (2 and 3): 97-112.
------. 2006a. Adult and student perceptions of music teaching and learning at
the Goderich Celtic College: An ethnographic study. PhD thesis,
Michigan State University.
------. 2006b. Learning, Teaching, and Transmission in the Lives of Two Irish
Musicians: An Ethnographic Case Study. International Journal of
Community Music: 1-21.
Waldron, Janice and Kari Veblen. 2009. Learning in a Celtic Community: An
Exploration of Informal Music Learning and Adult Amateur Musicians.
Bulletin of the Council for Research in Music Education 180: 59-74.
------. 2008. The medium is the message: Cyberspace, community and music
learning in the Irish traditional music virtual community. Journal of
Music, Education, and Technology 1(2): 99111.
Walker, Darwin E. 1998. Teaching Music: Managing the Successful Music
Program, 2nd edition. Belmont: Schirmer Thomson Learning.
Waterman, Christopher A. 1990. The Junior Fj Stars of Agbowo: Popular
Music and Yorb Children. in Music and Child Development: The
Biology of Music Making Proceedings of the 1987 Denver Conference,
edited by Frank Wilson and Franz Roehmann, 79-87. St. Louis: MMB
Music, Inc.
Waterhouse, David. 1982. Towards a New Analysis of Rhythm in Music. In
Cross-Cultural Perspectives on Music, edited by Robert Falck and
Timothy Rice, 29-37. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
389
Waters, Bill. 1990. Technology for Teaching: Specialized Fonts for Music
Education. Music Educators Journal 77(3): 66-69.
Webster, Peter. 2002. Historical Perspectives on Technology and Music. Music
Educators Journal 89(1): 38-43+54.
Weisberg, Robert. 1986. Creativity: Genius and other myths. New York: W.H.
Freeman and Company.
Wenger, Etienne. 1998. Communities of Practice: Learning, Meaning, and
Identity. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Wenger, Etienne, McDermott, Richard and William M. Snyder. 2002. Cultivating
Communities of Practice: A Guide to Managing Knowledge. Boston:
Harvard Business School Press.
White, Harry. 2005. The Progress of Music in Ireland. Dublin: Four Courts Press.
------. 1996. The Preservation of Music and Irish Cultural History.
International Review of the Aesthetics and Sociology of Music 27(2):
123-138.
Wilkinson, Desi. 1992. Flute-player. in Traditional Music: Whose Music?
Proceedings of a Co-operation North Conference, edited by Peter
McNamee, 39-42. Belfast: Institute of Irish Studies, Queen's University
Belfast.
Williams, Sean. 2010. Focus: Irish Traditional Music. New York and London:
Routledge.
Willman, Fred. 1992. New Solutions to Curricular Problems. Music Educators
Journal 79(3):33-35+68.
Wilson, Grace, V. 1926. Making the Most of Contests. Music Supervisors'
Journal 13(2): 11+13+65.
Wilson, Frank R. and Franz L. Roehmann, eds. 1990. Music and Child
Development: The of Music Making Proceedings of the 1987 Denver
Conference. St. Louis: MMB Music, Inc.
Wilson, Samuel M. and Leighton C. Peterson. 2002. The Anthropology of
Online Communities. Annual Review of Anthropology 31: 449-467.
Winter, Dennis C. 1990. Doolin's Micho Russell: A Portrait of the whistler from
Clare; His Brothers, Pakie & Gussie; and Their Village. Rosendale, NY:
Canal Press.
Witzleben, J. Lawrence. 1997. Whose Ethnomusicology? Western
Ethnomusicology and the Study of Asian Music. Ethnomusicology 41(2):
390
220-242.
Wright, Paul. 1992. New Technology in the Classroom. A Plea for the Creative
Use of Electronic Resources. The Musical Times 133(1794): 379-81.
Yoder, Vance A. 1972. A Study of Gastons Test of Musicality as Applied to
College Students. Journal of Research in Music Education 20(4): 491495.
Zimmermann, Basile. 2005. Technology is Culture: Two Paradigms. Leonardo
Music Journal 15: 53-57.
Discography
Any Old Time. 1982. Any Old Time. Mulligan. (LUN 047). Compact Disc.
------. 1987. Phoenix. Claddagh Records. (DARA CD 025). Compact Disc.
------. 1995. Crossing. Claddagh Records. (DARA CD 072). Compact Disc.
Bergin, Mary. 1979. Feadga Stin. Shanachie. (CEFCD 071). Compact Disc.
------. 1993. Feadga Stin 2. Shanachie. (CEFCD 149). Compact Disc.
Buille. 2007. Buille. Vertical Records. Compact Disc.
------. 2009. Buille 2. Crow Valley Music. Compact Disc.
Burke, Kevin. 1993. If the Cap Fits. Nashville: Green Linnet (LUN3021).
Compact Disc.
Canny, Paddy and P.J. Hayes. 1959. The All-Ireland Champions. Dublin: Dublin
Records. LP. Reissued in 2001 as An Historic Recording of Irish
Traditional Music from Country Clare and East Galway. Shanachie
76001. Compact Disc.
Cranitch, Matt. 1988. Give it Shtick. Ossian (OSSCD 6). Compact Disc.
Creagh, Seamus. 2009. Tunes for Practice. Dublin: Claddagh Records
(TUNESFORPRAC). Compact discs [2].
Dervish. 2003. Spirit. Nashville: Compass Records (COM4376). Compact Disc.
Liz Doherty & Fiddlesticks. 2000. Racket in the Rectory. Foot Stompin Records
(CDFSR 1704). Compact Disc.
Granville, Aoife. 2006. Srid Eoin Shuffle. Independently released. Compact
Disc.
Hamilton, Hammy. 1990. Moneymusk. Independently released. Compact Disc.
391
Hamilton, Hammy, ODriscoll, Con, and Seamus Creagh. 2005. Its No Secret.
Ossian. (OSSCD 89). Compact Disc.
Hayes, Martin. 1995. Under the Moon. Green Linnet. (GLI1155). Compact Disc.
------. 1993. Martin Hayes. Green Linnet. (GLI1127). Compact Disc.
Hayes, Martin and Dennis Cahill. 2008. Welcome Here Again. Green Linnet.
(GLI1233). Compact Disc.
------. 1999. Live in Seattle. Green Linnet. (GLI1195). Compact Disc.
------. 1997. The Lonesome Touch. Green Linnet. (GLI1181). Compact Disc.
Keenan, Paddy and Tommy OSullivan. 2001. The Long Grazing Acre. Nashville:
Compass. (COM 4355). Compact disc.
Langen, Tim and Helen Gubbins. 2010. Boys of 25 and the Connaught Heifers.
Independently released. Compact Disc.
Na Fil. 1977. Chanters Tune. Transatlantic (TRA 353). Compact Disc.
------. 1975. Folklore aus Ireland. Harmonia Mundi (20 22159-8). Compact
Disc.
------. 1974. A Kindly Welcome. Dolphin (DOL 1008). Compact Disc.
------. 1972. Na Fil 3. Outlet (SOLP 1017). Compact Disc.
------. 1971. Farewell to Connacht. Outlet (SOLP 1010). Compact Disc.
------. 1969. An Ghaoth Aniar. Mercier (IRL 9).
Nomos. 1995. I Won't Be Afraid Any More. Grapevine/Green Linnet. (R 252526).
Compact Disc.
------. 1997. Set You Free. Grapevine/Green Linnet. (GLCD 3120). Compact
Disc.
OConnell, Connie. 2000. Ceol Cill Na Martra (Music (from Cill na Martra),
Shanachie. (MW0000257597). Compact Disc.
Grda, Conal. 2008. Cnoc Bu. Independently released. Compact Disc.
------. 1990. The Top of Coom. Dublin: Claddagh Records (CCF27CD). Compact
Disc.
Rafferty, Dermot. 2013. The Green Bunch of Joy: Traditional Music from Armagh
and Down. Independently Released. Compact Disc.
Raw Bar Collective. 2011. Millhouse Measures. Independently released.
Compact Disc.
Vallely, Niall. 1999. Beyond Words. Beyond Records. Compact Disc.
392